1. The Declaration of Independence 2. Common Sense 3. The Crisis Paper's
|
IN
CONGRESS, JULY 4, 1776
The unanimous Declaration of the thirteen United
States of America
When in the Course of human
events it becomes necessary for one people to dissolve the political bands
which have connected them with another and to assume among the powers of the
earth, the separate and equal station to which the Laws of Nature and of
Nature's God entitle them, a decent respect to the opinions of mankind
requires that they should declare the causes which impel them to the
separation.
We hold these truths to be self-evident, that all men are created equal,
that they are endowed by their Creator with certain unalienable Rights, that
among these are Life, Liberty and the pursuit of Happiness. --That to secure
these rights, Governments are instituted among Men, deriving their just
powers from the consent of the governed, --That whenever any Form of
Government becomes destructive of these ends, it is the Right of the People
to alter or to abolish it, and to institute new Government, laying its
foundation on such principles and organizing its powers in such form, as to
them shall seem most likely to effect their Safety and Happiness. Prudence,
indeed, will dictate that Governments long established should not be changed
for light and transient causes; and accordingly all experience hath shewn
that mankind are more disposed to suffer, while evils are sufferable than to
right themselves by abolishing the forms to which they are accustomed. But
when a long train of abuses and usurpations, pursuing invariably the same
Object evinces a design to reduce them under absolute Despotism, it is their
right, it is their duty, to throw off such Government, and to provide new
Guards for their future security. --Such has been the patient sufferance of
these Colonies; and such is now the necessity which constrains them to alter
their former Systems of Government. The history of the present King of Great
Britain is a history of repeated injuries and usurpations, all having in
direct object the establishment of an absolute Tyranny over these States. To
prove this, let Facts be submitted to a candid world.
He has refuted his Assent to Laws, the most wholesome and necessary for the
public good.
He has forbidden his Governors to pass Laws of immediate and pressing
importance, unless suspended in their operation till his Assent should be
obtained; and when so suspended, he has utterly neglected to attend to them.
He has refused to pass other Laws for the accommodation of large districts
of people, unless those people would relinquish the right of Representation
in the Legislature, a right inestimable to them and formidable to tyrants
only.
He has called together legislative bodies at places unusual, uncomfortable,
and distant from the depository of their Public Records, for the sole
purpose of fatiguing them into compliance with his measures.
He has dissolved Representative Houses repeatedly, for opposing with manly
firmness his invasions on the rights of the people.
He has refused for a long time, after such dissolutions, to cause others to
be elected, whereby the Legislative Powers, incapable of Annihilation, have
returned to the People at large for their exercise; the State remaining in
the mean time exposed to all the dangers of invasion from without, and
convulsions within.
He has endeavoured to prevent the population of these States; for that
purpose obstructing the Laws for Naturalization of Foreigners; refusing to
pass others to encourage their migrations hither, and raising the conditions
of new Appropriations of Lands.
He has obstructed the Administration of Justice by refusing his Assent to
Laws for establishing Judiciary Powers.
He has made Judges dependent on his Will alone for the tenure of their
offices, and the amount and payment of their salaries.
He has erected a multitude of New Offices, and sent hither swarms of
Officers to harass our people and eat out their substance.
He has kept among us, in times of peace, Standing Armies without the Consent
of our legislatures.
He has affected to render the Military independent of and superior to the
Civil Power.
He has combined with others to subject us to a jurisdiction foreign to our
constitution, and unacknowledged by our laws; giving his Assent to their
Acts of pretended Legislation:
For quartering large bodies of armed troops among us:
For protecting them, by a mock Trial from punishment for any Murders which
they should commit on the Inhabitants of these States:
For cutting off our Trade with all parts of the world:
For imposing Taxes on us without our Consent:
For depriving us in many cases, of the benefit of Trial by Jury:
For transporting us beyond Seas to be tried for pretended offences:
For abolishing the free System of English Laws in a neighbouring Province,
establishing therein an Arbitrary government, and enlarging its Boundaries
so as to render it at once an example and fit instrument for introducing the
same absolute rule into these Colonies
For taking away our Charters, abolishing our most valuable Laws and altering
fundamentally the Forms of our Governments:
For suspending our own Legislatures, and declaring themselves invested with
power to legislate for us in all cases whatsoever.
He has abdicated Government here, by declaring us out of his Protection and
waging War against us.
He has plundered our seas, ravaged our Coasts burnt our towns, and destroyed
the lives of our people.
He is at this time transporting large Armies of foreign Mercenaries to
compleat the works of death, desolation, and tyranny, already begun with
circumstances of Cruelty & Perfidy scarcely paralleled in the most barbarous
ages, and totally unworthy the Head of a civilized nation.
He has constrained our fellow Citizens taken Captive on the high Seas to
bear Arms against their Country, to become the executioners of their friends
and Brethren, or to fall themselves by their Hands.
He has excited domestic insurrections amongst us, and has endeavoured to
bring on the inhabitants of our frontiers, the merciless Indian Savages
whose known rule of warfare, is an undistinguished destruction of all ages,
sexes and conditions.
In every stage of these Oppressions We have Petitioned for Redress in the
most humble terms: Our repeated Petitions have been answered only by
repeated injury. A Prince, whose character is thus marked by every act which
may define a Tyrant, is unfit to be the ruler of a free people.
Nor have We been wanting in attentions to our British brethren. We have
warned them from time to time of attempts by their legislature to extend an
unwarrantable jurisdiction over us. We have reminded them of the
circumstances of our emigration and settlement here. We have appealed to
their native justice and magnanimity, and we have conjured them by the ties
of our common kindred. to disavow these usurpations, which would inevitably
interrupt our connections and correspondence. They too have been deaf to the
voice of justice and of consanguinity. We must, therefore, acquiesce in the
necessity, which denounces our Separation, and hold them, as we hold the
rest of mankind, Enemies in War, in Peace Friends.
We, therefore, the Representatives of the United States of America, in
General Congress, Assembled, appealing to the Supreme Judge of the world for
the rectitude of our intentions, do, in the Name, and by Authority of the
good People of these Colonies, solemnly publish and declare, That these
United Colonies are, and of Right ought to be Free and Independent States,
that they are Absolved from all Allegiance to the British Crown, and that
all political connection between them and the State of Great Britain, is and
ought to be totally dissolved; and that as Free and Independent States, they
have full Power to levy War, conclude Peace contract Alliances, establish
Commerce, and to do all other Acts and Things which Independent States may
of right do. --And for the support of this Declaration, with a firm reliance
on the protection of Divine Providence, we mutually pledge to each other our
Lives, our Fortunes and our sacred Honor.
--John Hancock
New Hampshire:
Josiah Bartlett, William Whipple, Matthew Thornton
Massachusetts:
John Hancock, Samuel Adams, John Adams, Robert Treat Paine, Elbridge Gerry
Rhode Island:
Stephen Hopkins, William Ellery
Connecticut:
Roger Sherman, Samuel Huntington, William Williams, Oliver Wolcott
New York:
William Floyd, Philip Livingston, Francis Lewis, Lewis Morris
New Jersey:
Richard Stockton, John Witherspoon, Francis Hopkinson, John Hart, Abraham
Clark
Pennsylvania:
Robert Morris, Benjamin Rush, Benjamin Franklin, John Morton, George Clymer,
James Smith, George Taylor, James Wilson, George Ross
Delaware:
Caesar Rodney, George Read, Thomas McKean
Maryland:
Samuel Chase, William Paca, Thomas Stone, Charles Carroll of Carrollton
Virginia:
George Wythe, Richard Henry Lee, Thomas Jefferson, Benjamin Harrison, Thomas
Nelson, Jr., Francis Lightfoot Lee, Carter Braxton
North Carolina:
William Hooper, Joseph Hewes, John Penn
South Carolina:
Edward Rutledge, Thomas Heyward, Jr., Thomas Lynch, Jr., Arthur Middleton
Georgia:
Button Gwinnett, Lyman Hall, George Walton
|
Common Sense
Thomas Paine
1776
Introduction
I:
Of the Origin and
Design of Government in General, with Concise Remarks on the English
Constitution
II:
Of Monarchy and
Hereditary Succession
III:
Thoughts on the Present
State of American Affairs
IV:
Of the Present
Ability of America,
with Some Miscellaneous Reflexions
Appendix
Introduction
PERHAPS the sentiments
contained in the following pages, are not YET sufficiently fashionable to
procure them general favor; a long habit of not thinking a thing WRONG, gives
it a superficial appearance of being RIGHT, and raises at first a formidable
outcry in defense of custom. But the tumult soon subsides. Time makes more
converts than reason.
As a long and violent abuse
of power, is generally the Means of calling the right of it in question (and in
Matters too which might never have been thought of, had not the Sufferers been
aggravated into the inquiry) and as the King of England hath undertaken in his
OWN RIGHT, to support the Parliament in what he calls THEIRS, and as the good
people of this country are grievously oppressed by the combination, they have
an undoubted privilege to inquire into the pretensions of both, and equally to
reject the usurpations of either.
In the following sheets, the
author hath studiously avoided every thing which is personal among ourselves.
Compliments as well as censure to individuals make no part thereof. The wise,
and the worthy, need not the triumph of a pamphlet; and those whose sentiments
are injudicious, or unfriendly, will cease of themselves unless too much pains
are bestowed upon their conversion.
The cause of America is in a
great measure the cause of all mankind. Many circumstances have, and will
arise, which are not local, but universal, and through which the principles of
all Lovers of Mankind are affected, and in the Event of which, their Affections
are interested. The laying of a Country desolate with Fire and Sword, declaring
War against the natural rights of all Mankind, and extirpating the Defenders
thereof from the Face of the Earth, is the Concern of every Man to whom Nature
hath given the Power of feeling; of which Class, regardless of Party Censure,
is
THE AUTHOR
POSTSCRIPT TO PREFACE IN THE
THIRD EDITION
P. S. The Publication of this
new Edition hath been delayed, with a View of taking notice (had it been
necessary) of any Attempt to refute the Doctrine of Independence: As no Answer
hath yet appeared, it is now presumed that none will, the Time needful for
getting such a Performance ready for the Public being considerably past.
Who the Author of this
Production is, is wholly unnecessary to the Public, as the Object for Attention
is the DOCTRINE ITSELF, not the MAN. Yet it may not be unnecessary to say, That
he is unconnected with any Party, and under no sort of Influence public or
private, but the influence of reason and principle.
Philadelphia, February 14, 1776.
I.
Of the Origin and Design of Government in General, with Concise Remarks on the
English Constitution
SOME writers have so
confounded society with government, as to leave little or no distinction
between them; whereas they are not only different, but have different origins.
Society is produced by our wants, and government by wickedness; the former
promotes our happiness POSITIVELY by uniting our affections, the latter
NEGATIVELY by restraining our vices. The one encourages intercourse, the other
creates distinctions. The first is a patron, the last a punisher.
Society in every state is a
blessing, but government even in its best state is but a necessary evil; in its
worst state an intolerable one; for when we suffer, or are exposed to the same
miseries BY A GOVERNMENT, which we might expect in a country WITHOUT
GOVERNMENT, our calamity is heightened by reflecting that we furnish the means
by which we suffer. Government, like dress, is the badge of lost innocence; the
palaces of kings are built on the ruins of the bowers of paradise. For were the
impulses of conscience clear, uniform, and irresistibly obeyed, man would need
no other lawgiver; but that not being the case, he finds it necessary to
surrender up a part of his property to furnish means for the protection of the
rest; and this he is induced to do by the same prudence which in every other
case advises him out of two evils to choose the least. WHEREFORE, security
being the true design and end of government, it unanswerably follows that
whatever FORM thereof appears most likely to ensure it to us, with the least
expence and greatest benefit, is preferable to all others.
In order to gain a clear and
just idea of the design and end of government, let us suppose a small number of
persons settled in some sequestered part of the earth, unconnected with the
rest, they will then represent the first peopling of any country, or of the
world. In this state of natural liberty, society will be their first thought. A
thousand motives will excite them thereto, the strength of one man is so
unequal to his wants, and his mind so unfitted for perpetual solitude, that he
is soon obliged to seek assistance and relief of another, who in his turn
requires the same. Four or five united would be able to raise a tolerable
dwelling in the midst of a wilderness, but ONE man might labor out the common
period of life without accomplishing any thing; when he had felled his timber
he could not remove it, nor erect it after it was removed; hunger in the mean
time would urge him from his work, and every different want call him a
different way. Disease, nay even misfortune would be death, for though neither
might be mortal, yet either would disable him from living, and reduce him to a
state in which he might rather be said to perish than to die.
This necessity, like a
gravitating power, would soon form our newly arrived emigrants into society,
the reciprocal blessing of which, would supersede, and render the obligations
of law and government unnecessary while they remained perfectly just to each
other; but as nothing but heaven is impregnable to vice, it will unavoidably
happen, that in proportion as they surmount the first difficulties of
emigration, which bound them together in a common cause, they will begin to
relax in their duty and attachment to each other; and this remissness, will
point out the necessity, of establishing some form of government to supply the
defect of moral virtue.
Some convenient tree will
afford them a State-House, under the branches of which, the whole colony may
assemble to deliberate on public matters. It is more than probable that their
first laws will have the title only of REGULATIONS, and be enforced by no other
penalty than public disesteem. In this first parliament every man, by natural
right, will have a seat.
But as the colony increases,
the public concerns will increase likewise, and the distance at which the
members may be separated, will render it too inconvenient for all of them to
meet on every occasion as at first, when their number was small, their
habitations near, and the public concerns few and trifling. This will point out
the convenience of their consenting to leave the legislative part to be managed
by a select number chosen from the whole body, who are supposed to have the
same concerns at stake which those have who appointed them, and who will act in
the same manner as the whole body would act were they present. If the colony
continues increasing, it will become necessary to augment the number of the
representatives, and that the interest of every part of the colony may be
attended to, it will be found best to divide the whole into convenient parts,
each part sending its proper number; and that the ELECTED might never form to
themselves an interest separate from the ELECTORS, prudence will point out the
propriety of having elections often; because as the ELECTED might by that means
return and mix again with the general body of the ELECTORS in a few months,
their fidelity to the public will be secured by the prudent reflexion of not
making a rod for themselves. And as this frequent interchange will establish a
common interest with every part of the community, they will mutually and
naturally support each other, and on this (not on the unmeaning name of king)
depends the STRENGTH OF GOVERNMENT, AND THE HAPPINESS OF THE GOVERNED.
Here then is the origin and
rise of government; namely, a mode rendered necessary by the inability of moral
virtue to govern the world; here too is the design and end of government, viz.
freedom and security. And however our eyes may be dazzled with snow, or our
ears deceived by sound; however prejudice may warp our wills, or interest darken
our understanding, the simple voice of nature and of reason will say, it is
right.
I draw my idea of the form of
government from a principle in nature, which no art can overturn, viz. that the
more simple any thing is, the less liable it is to be disordered, and the
easier repaired when disordered; and with this maxim in view, I offer a few
remarks on the so much boasted constitution of England. That it was noble for
the dark and slavish times in which it was erected, is granted. When the world
was over run with tyranny the least remove therefrom was a glorious rescue. But
that it is imperfect, subject to convulsions, and incapable of producing what
it seems to promise, is easily demonstrated.
Absolute governments (tho'
the disgrace of human nature) have this advantage with them, that they are
simple; if the people suffer, they know the head from which their suffering
springs, know likewise the remedy, and are not bewildered by a variety of
causes and cures. But the constitution of England is so exceedingly complex,
that the nation may suffer for years together without being able to discover in
which part the fault lies, some will say in one and some in another, and every
political physician will advise a different medicine.
I know it is difficult to get
over local or long standing prejudices, yet if we will suffer ourselves to
examine the component parts of the English constitution, we shall find them to
be the base remains of two ancient tyrannies, compounded with some new
republican materials.
FIRST. The remains of
monarchical tyranny in the person of the king.
SECONDLY. The remains of aristocratically
tyranny in the persons of the peers.
THIRDLY. The new republican
materials, in the persons of the commons, on whose virtue depends the freedom
of England.
The two first, by being
hereditary, are independent of the people; wherefore in a CONSTITUTIONAL SENSE
they contribute nothing towards the freedom of the state.
To say that the constitution
of England
is a UNION of three powers reciprocally
CHECKING each other, is farcical, either the words have no meaning, or they are
flat contradictions.
To say that the commons is a
check upon the king, presupposes two things.
FIRST. That the king is not
to be trusted without being looked after, or in other words, that a thirst for
absolute power is the natural disease of monarchy.
SECONDLY. That the commons,
by being appointed for that purpose, are either wiser or more worthy of
confidence than the crown.
But as the same constitution
which gives the commons a power to check the king by withholding the supplies,
gives afterwards the king a power to check the commons, by empowering him to
reject their other bills; it again supposes that the king is wiser than those
whom it has already supposed to be wiser than him. A mere absurdity!
There is something
exceedingly ridiculous in the composition of monarchy; it first excludes a man
from the means of information, yet empowers him to act in cases where the
highest judgment is required. The state of a king shuts him from the world, yet
the business of a king requires him to know it thoroughly; wherefore the
different parts, by unnaturally opposing and destroying each other, prove the
whole character to be absurd and useless.
Some writers have explained
the English constitution thus; the king, say they, is one, the people another;
the peers are an house in behalf of the king; the commons in behalf of the
people; but this hath all the distinctions of an house divided against itself;
and though the expressions be pleasantly arranged, yet when examined they
appear idle and ambiguous; and it will always happen, that the nicest
construction that words are capable of, when applied to the description of some
thing which either cannot exist, or is too incomprehensible to be within the
compass of description, will be words of sound only, and though they may amuse
the ear, they cannot inform the mind, for this explanation includes a previous
question, viz. HOW CAME THE KING BY A POWER WHICH THE PEOPLE ARE AFRAID TO
TRUST, AND ALWAYS OBLIGED TO CHECK? Such a power could not be the gift of a
wise people, neither can any power, WHICH NEEDS CHECKING, be from God; yet the
provision, which the constitution makes, supposes such a power to exist.
But the provision is unequal
to the task; the means either cannot or will not accomplish the end, and the
whole affair is a felo de se; for as the greater weight will always carry up
the less, and as all the wheels of a machine are put in motion by one, it only
remains to know which power in the constitution has the most weight, for that
will govern; and though the others, or a part of them, may clog, or, as the
phrase is, check the rapidity of its motion, yet so long as they cannot stop
it, their endeavors will be ineffectual; the first moving power will at last
have its way, and what it wants in speed is supplied by time.
That the crown is this
overbearing part in the English constitution needs not be mentioned, and that
it derives its whole consequence merely from being the giver of places and
pensions is self-evident; wherefore, though we have been wise enough to shut
and lock a door against absolute monarchy, we at the same time have been
foolish enough to put the crown in possession of the key.
The prejudice of Englishmen,
in favor of their own government by king, lords and commons, arises as much or
more from national pride than reason. Individuals are undoubtedly safer in England than in
some other countries, but the WILL of the king is as much the LAW of the land
in Britain
as in France,
with this difference, that instead of proceeding directly from his mouth, it is
handed to the people under the more formidable shape of an act of parliament.
For the fate of Charles the first, hath only made kings more subtle--not more
just.
Wherefore, laying aside all
national pride and prejudice in favor of modes and forms, the plain truth is,
that IT IS WHOLLY OWING TO THE CONSTITUTION OF THE PEOPLE, AND NOT TO THE
CONSTITUTION OF THE GOVERNMENT that the crown is not as oppressive in England
as in Turkey.
An inquiry into the
CONSTITUTIONAL ERRORS in the English form of government is at this time highly
necessary; for as we are never in a proper condition of doing justice to
others, while we continue under the influence of some leading partiality, so
neither are we capable of doing it to ourselves while we remain fettered by any
obstinate prejudice. And as a man, who is attached to a prostitute, is unfitted
to choose or judge of a wife, so any prepossession in favour of a rotten
constitution of government will disable us from discerning a good one.
II. Of Monarchy and Hereditary
Succession
MANKIND being originally
equals in the order of creation, the equality could only be destroyed by some
subsequent circumstance; the distinctions of rich, and poor, may in a great
measure be accounted for, and that without having recourse to the harsh ill
sounding names of oppression and avarice. Oppression is often the CONSEQUENCE,
but seldom or never the MEANS of riches; and though avarice will preserve a man
from being necessitous poor, it generally makes him too timorous to be wealthy.
But there is another and
greater distinction for which no truly natural or religious reason can be
assigned, and that is, the distinction of men into KINGS and SUBJECTS. Male and
female are the distinctions of nature, good and bad the distinctions of heaven;
but how a race of men came into the world so exalted above the rest, and
distinguished like some new species, is worth enquiring into, and whether they
are the means of happiness or of misery to mankind.
In the early ages of the
world, according to the scripture chronology, there were no kings; the
consequence of which was there were no wars; it is the pride of kings which
throw mankind into confusion. Holland
without a king hath enjoyed more peace for this last century than any of the
monarchical governments in Europe. Antiquity
favors the same remark; for the quiet and rural lives of the first patriarchs
hath a happy something in them, which vanishes away when we come to the history
of Jewish royalty.
Government by kings was first
introduced into the world by the Heathens, from whom the children of Israel copied
the custom. It was the most prosperous invention the Devil ever set on foot for
the promotion of idolatry. The Heathens paid divine honors to their deceased
kings, and the Christian world hath improved on the plan by doing the same to
their living ones. How impious is the title of sacred majesty applied to a
worm, who in the midst of his splendor is crumbling into dust!
As the exalting one man so
greatly above the rest cannot be justified on the equal rights of nature, so
neither can it be defended on the authority of scripture; for the will of the
Almighty, as declared by Gideon and the prophet Samuel, expressly disapproves of
government by kings. All anti-monarchical parts of scripture have been very
smoothly glossed over in monarchical governments, but they undoubtedly merit
the attention of countries which have their governments yet to form.
"RENDER UNTO CAESAR THE THINGS WHICH ARE CAESAR'S" is the scripture
doctrine of courts, yet it is no support of monarchical government, for the
Jews at that time were without a king, and in a state of vassalage to the
Romans.
Near three thousand years
passed away from the Mosaic account of the creation, till the Jews under a
national delusion requested a king. Till then their form of government (except
in extraordinary cases, where the Almighty interposed) was a kind of republic
administered by a judge and the elders of the tribes. Kings they had none, and
it was held sinful to acknowledge any being under that title but the Lord of
Hosts. And when a man seriously reflects on the idolatrous homage which is paid
to the persons of Kings, he need not wonder, that the Almighty ever jealous of
his honor, should disapprove of a form of government which so impiously invades
the prerogative of heaven.
Monarchy is ranked in
scripture as one of the sins of the Jews, for which a curse in reserve is
denounced against them. The history of that transaction is worth attending to.
The children of Israel being
oppressed by the Midianites, Gideon marched against them with a small army, and
victory, thro' the divine interposition, decided in his favour. The Jews elate
with success, and attributing it to the generalship of Gideon, proposed making
him a king, saying, RULE THOU OVER US, THOU AND THY SON AND THY SON'S SON. Here
was temptation in its fullest extent; not a kingdom only, but an hereditary
one, but Gideon in the piety of his soul replied, I WILL NOT RULE OVER YOU,
NEITHER SHALL MY SON RULE OVER YOU. THE LORD SHALL RULE OVER YOU. Words need
not be more explicit; Gideon doth not DECLINE the honor, but denieth their
right to give it; neither doth he compliment them with invented declarations of
his thanks, but in the positive stile of a prophet charges them with
disaffection to their proper Sovereign, the King of heaven.
About one hundred and thirty
years after this, they fell again into the same error. The hankering which the
Jews had for the idolatrous customs of the Heathens, is something exceedingly
unaccountable; but so it was, that laying hold of the misconduct of Samuel's
two sons, who were entrusted with some secular concerns, they came in an abrupt
and clamorous manner to Samuel, saying, BEHOLD THOU ART OLD, AND THY SONS WALK
NOT IN THY WAYS, NOW MAKE US A KING TO JUDGE US LIKE ALL THE OTHER NATIONS. And
here we cannot but observe that their motives were bad, viz. that they might be
LIKE unto other nations, i. e. the Heathens, whereas their true glory laid in
being as much UNLIKE them as possible. BUT THE THING DISPLEASED SAMUEL WHEN
THEY SAID, GIVE US A KING TO JUDGE US; AND SAMUEL PRAYED UNTO THE LORD, AND THE
LORD SAID UNTO SAMUEL, HEARKEN UNTO THE VOICE OF THE PEOPLE IN ALL THAT THEY
SAY UNTO THEE, FOR THEY HAVE NOT REJECTED THEE, BUT THEY HAVE REJECTED ME, THAT
I SHOULD NOT REIGN OVER THEM. ACCORDING TO ALL THE WORKS WHICH THEY HAVE DONE
SINCE THE DAY THAT I BROUGHT THEM UP OUT OF EGYPT, EVEN UNTO THIS DAY;
WHEREWITH THEY HAVE FORSAKEN ME AND SERVED OTHER GODS; SO DO THEY ALSO UNTO
THEE. NOW THEREFORE HEARKEN UNTO THEIR VOICE, HOWBEIT, PROTEST SOLEMNLY UNTO
THEM AND SHEW THEM THE MANNER OF THE KING THAT SHALL REIGN OVER THEM, I. E. not
of any particular king, but the general manner of the kings of the earth, whom
Israel was so eagerly copying after. And notwithstanding the great distance of
time and difference of manners, the character is still in fashion. AND SAMUEL
TOLD ALL THE WORDS OF THE LORD UNTO THE PEOPLE, THAT ASKED OF HIM A KING. AND HE
SAID, THIS SHALL BE THE MANNER OF THE KING THAT SHALL REIGN OVER YOU; HE WILL
TAKE YOUR SONS AND APPOINT THEM FOR HIMSELF, FOR HIS CHARIOTS, AND TO BE HIS
HORSEMEN, AND SOME SHALL RUN BEFORE HIS CHARIOTS (this description agrees with
the present mode of impressing men) AND HE WILL APPOINT HIM CAPTAINS OVER
THOUSANDS AND CAPTAINS OVER FIFTIES, AND WILL SET THEM TO EAR HIS GROUND AND TO
READ HIS HARVEST, AND TO MAKE HIS INSTRUMENTS OF WAR, AND INSTRUMENTS OF HIS
CHARIOTS; AND HE WILL TAKE YOUR DAUGHTERS TO BE CONFECTIONARIES, AND TO BE
COOKS AND TO BE BAKERS (this describes the expense and luxury as well as the
oppression of kings) AND HE WILL TAKE YOUR FIELDS AND YOUR OLIVE YARDS, EVEN
THE BEST OF THEM, AND GIVE THEM TO HIS SERVANTS; AND HE WILL TAKE THE TENTH OF
YOUR FEED, AND OF YOUR VINEYARDS, AND GIVE THEM TO HIS OFFICERS AND TO HIS
SERVANTS (by which we see that bribery, corruption, and favoritism are the
standing vices of kings) AND HE WILL TAKE THE TENTH OF YOUR MEN SERVANTS, AND
YOUR MAID SERVANTS, AND YOUR GOODLIEST YOUNG MEN AND YOUR ASSES, AND PUT THEM
TO HIS WORK; AND HE WILL TAKE THE TENTH OF YOUR SHEEP, AND YE SHALL BE HIS
SERVANTS, AND YE SHALL CRY OUT IN THAT DAY BECAUSE OF YOUR KING WHICH YE SHALL
HAVE CHOSEN, AND THE LORD WILL NOT HEAR YOU IN THAT DAY. This accounts for the
continuation of monarchy; neither do the characters of the few good kings which
have lived since, either sanctify the title, or blot out the sinfulness of the
origin; the high encomium given of David takes no notice of him OFFICIALLY AS A
KING, but only as a MAN after God's own heart. NEVERTHELESS THE PEOPLE REFUSED
TO OBEY THE VOICE OF SAMUEL, AND THEY SAID, NAY, BUT WE WILL HAVE A KING OVER
US, THAT WE MAY BE LIKE ALL THE NATIONS, AND THAT OUR KING MAY JUDGE US, AND GO
OUT BEFORE US, AND FIGHT OUR BATTLES. Samuel continued to reason with them, but
to no purpose; he set before them their ingratitude, but all would not avail;
and seeing them fully bent on their folly, he cried out, I WILL CALL UNTO THE
LORD, AND HE SHALL SEND THUNDER AND RAIN (which then was a punishment, being in
the time of wheat harvest) THAT YE MAY PERCEIVE AND SEE THAT YOUR WICKEDNESS IS
GREAT WHICH YE HAVE DONE IN THE SIGHT OF THE LORD, IN ASKING YOU A KING. SO
SAMUEL CALLED UNTO THE LORD, AND THE LORD SENT THUNDER AND RAIN THAT DAY, AND
ALL THE PEOPLE GREATLY FEARED THE LORD AND SAMUEL. AND ALL THE PEOPLE SAID UNTO
SAMUEL, PRAY FOR THY SERVANTS UNTO THE LORD THY GOD THAT WE DIE NOT, FOR WE
HAVE ADDED UNTO OUR SINS THIS EVIL, TO ASK A KING. These portions of scripture
are direct and positive. They admit of no equivocal construction. That the
Almighty hath here entered his protest against monarchical government is true,
or the scripture is false. And a man hath good reason to believe that there is
as much of king-craft, as priest-craft, in withholding the scripture from the
public in Popish countries. For monarchy in every instance is the Popery of
government.
To the evil of monarchy we
have added that of hereditary succession; and as the first is a degradation and
lessening of ourselves, so the second, claimed as a matter of right, is an
insult and an imposition on posterity. For all men being originally equals, no
ONE by BIRTH could have a right to set up his own family in perpetual
preference to all others for ever, and though himself might deserve SOME decent
degree of honors of his cotemporaries, yet his descendants might be far too
unworthy to inherit them. One of the strongest NATURAL proofs of the folly of
hereditary right in kings, is, that nature disapproves it, otherwise, she would
not so frequently turn it into ridicule by giving mankind an ASS FOR A LION.
Secondly, as no man at first
could possess any other public honors than were bestowed upon him, so the
givers of those honors could have no power to give away the right of posterity,
and though they might say "We choose you for OUR head," they could
not, without manifest injustice to their children, say "that your children
and your children's children shall reign over OURS for ever." Because such
an unwise, unjust, unnatural compact might (perhaps) in the next succession put
them under the government of a rogue or a fool. Most wise men, in their private
sentiments, have ever treated hereditary right with contempt; yet it is one of
those evils, which when once established is not easily removed; many submit
from fear, others from superstition, and the more powerful part shares with the
king the plunder of the rest.
This is supposing the present
race of kings in the world to have had an honorable origin; whereas it is more
than probable, that could we take off the dark covering of antiquity, and trace
them to their first rise, that we should find the first of them nothing better
than the principal ruffian of some restless gang, whose savage manners or
pre-eminence in subtlety obtained him the title of chief among plunderers; and
who by increasing in power, and extending his depredations, over-awed the quiet
and defenseless to purchase their safety by frequent contributions. Yet his
electors could have no idea of giving hereditary right to his descendants,
because such a perpetual exclusion of themselves was incompatible with the free
and unrestrained principles they professed to live by. Wherefore, hereditary
succession in the early ages of monarchy could not take place as a matter of
claim, but as something casual or complimented; but as few or no records were
extant in those days, and traditionary history stuffed with fables, it was very
easy, after the lapse of a few generations, to trump up some superstitious
tale, conveniently timed, Mahomet like, to cram hereditary right down the
throats of the vulgar. Perhaps the disorders which threatened, or seemed to
threaten, on the decease of a leader and the choice of a new one (for elections
among ruffians could not be very orderly) induced many at first to favor
hereditary pretensions; by which means it happened, as it hath happened since,
that what at first was submitted to as a convenience, was afterwards claimed as
a right.
England, since the conquest, hath known some
few good monarchs, but groaned beneath a much larger number of bad ones; yet no
man in his senses can say that their claim under William the Conqueror is a
very honorable one. A French bastard landing with an armed banditti, and
establishing himself king of England
against the consent of the natives, is in plain terms a very paltry rascally
original. It certainly hath no divinity in it. However, it is needless to spend
much time in exposing the folly of hereditary right, if there are any so weak
as to believe it, let them promiscuously worship the ass and lion, and welcome.
I shall neither copy their humility, nor disturb their devotion.
Yet I should be glad to ask
how they suppose kings came at first? The question admits but of three answers,
viz. either by lot, by election, or by usurpation. If the first king was taken
by lot, it establishes a precedent for the next, which excludes hereditary
succession. Saul was by lot, yet the succession was not hereditary, neither
does it appear from that transaction there was any intention it ever should. If
the first king of any country was by election, that likewise establishes a
precedent for the next; for to say, that the RIGHT of all future generations is
taken away, by the act of the first electors, in their choice not only of a
king, but of a family of kings for ever, hath no parrallel in or out of
scripture but the doctrine of original sin, which supposes the free will of all
men lost in Adam; and from such comparison, and it will admit of no other,
hereditary succession can derive no glory. For as in Adam all sinned, and as in
the first electors all men obeyed; as in the one all mankind were subjected to
Satan, and in the other to Sovereignty; as our innocence was lost in the first,
and our authority in the last; and as both disable us from reassuming some
former state and privilege, it unanswerably follows that original sin and
hereditary succession are parallels. Dishonorable rank! Inglorious connexion!
Yet the most subtle sophist cannot produce a jester simile.
As to usurpation, no man will
be so hardy as to defend it; and that William the Conqueror was an usurper is a
fact not to be contradicted. The plain truth is, that the antiquity of English
monarchy will not bear looking into.
But it is not so much the
absurdity as the evil of hereditary succession which concerns mankind. Did it
ensure a race of good and wise men it would have the seal of divine authority,
but as it opens a door to the FOOLISH, the WICKED, and the IMPROPER, it hath in
it the nature of oppression. Men who look upon themselves born to reign, and
others to obey, soon grow insolent; selected from the rest of mankind their
minds are early poisoned by importance; and the world they act in differs so
materially from the world at large, that they have but little opportunity of
knowing its true interests, and when they succeed to the government are
frequently the most ignorant and unfit of any throughout the dominions.
Another evil which attends
hereditary succession is, that the throne is subject to be possessed by a minor
at any age; all which time the regency, acting under the cover of a king, have
every opportunity and inducement to betray their trust. The same national
misfortune happens, when a king worn out with age and infirmity, enters the
last stage of human weakness. In both these cases the public becomes a prey to
every miscreant, who can tamper successfully with the follies either of age or
infancy.
The most plausible plea,
which hath ever been offered in favor of hereditary succession, is, that it
preserves a nation from civil wars; and were this true, it would be weighty;
whereas, it is the most barefaced falsity ever imposed upon mankind. The whole
history of England
disowns the fact. Thirty kings and two minors have reigned in that distracted
kingdom since the conquest, in which time there have been (including the
Revolution) no less than eight civil wars and nineteen rebellions. Wherefore
instead of making for peace, it makes against it, and destroys the very foundation
it seems to stand on.
The contest for monarchy and
succession, between the houses of York
and Lancaster,
laid England
in a scene of blood for many years. Twelve pitched battles, besides skirmishes
and sieges, were fought between Henry and Edward. Twice was Henry prisoner to
Edward, who in his turn was prisoner to Henry. And so uncertain is the fate of
war and the temper of a nation, when nothing but personal matters are the
ground of a quarrel, that Henry was taken in triumph from a prison to a palace,
and Edward obliged to fly from a palace to a foreign land; yet, as sudden
transitions of temper are seldom lasting, Henry in his turn was driven from the
throne, and Edward recalled to succeed him. The parliament always following the
strongest side.
This contest began in the
reign of Henry the Sixth, and was not entirely extinguished till Henry the
Seventh, in whom the families were united. Including a period of 67 years, viz.
from 1422 to 1489.
In short, monarchy and
succession have laid (not this or that kingdom only) but the world in blood and
ashes. 'Tis a form of government which the word of God bears testimony against,
and blood will attend it.
If we inquire into the
business of a king, we shall find that in some countries they have none; and
after sauntering away their lives without pleasure to themselves or advantage
to the nation, withdraw from the scene, and leave their successors to tread the
same idle round. In absolute monarchies the whole weight of business, civil and
military, lies on the king; the children of Israel in their request for a king,
urged this plea "that he may judge us, and go out before us and fight our
battles." But in countries where he is neither a judge nor a general, as
in England,
a man would be puzzled to know what IS his business.
The nearer any government
approaches to a republic the less business there is for a king. It is somewhat
difficult to find a proper name for the government of England. Sir
William Meredith calls it a republic; but in its present state it is unworthy
of the name, because the corrupt influence of the crown, by having all the
places in its disposal, hath so effectually swallowed up the power, and eaten
out the virtue of the house of commons (the republican part in the
constitution) that the government of England is nearly as monarchical as that
of France or Spain. Men fall out with names without understanding them. For it
is the republican and not the monarchical part of the constitution of England
which Englishmen glory in, viz. the liberty of choosing an house of commons
from out of their own body--and it is easy to see that when republican virtue
fails, slavery ensues. Why is the constitution of England sickly, but because
monarchy hath poisoned the republic, the crown hath engrossed the commons?
In England a king hath little more to
do than to make war and give away places; which in plain terms, is to
impoverish the nation and set it together by the ears. A pretty business indeed
for a man to be allowed eight hundred thousand sterling a year for, and
worshipped into the bargain! Of more worth is one honest man to society and in
the sight of God, than all the crowned ruffians that ever lived.
III. Thoughts on the
Present State
of American Affairs
IN the following pages I
offer nothing more than simple facts, plain arguments, and common sense; and
have no other preliminaries to settle with the reader, than that he will divest
himself of prejudice and prepossession, and suffer his reason and his feelings
to determine for themselves; that he will put ON, or rather that he will not
put OFF, the true character of a man, and generously enlarge his views beyond
the present day.
Volumes have been written on
the subject of the struggle between England and America. Men of
all ranks have embarked in the controversy, from different motives, and with
various designs; but all have been ineffectual, and the period of debate is
closed. Arms, as the last resource, decide the contest; the appeal was the
choice of the king, and the continent hath accepted the challenge.
It hath been reported of the
late Mr Pelham (who tho' an able minister was not without his faults) that on
his being attacked in the house of commons, on the score, that his measures
were only of a temporary kind, replied, "THEY WILL LAST MY TIME."
Should a thought so fatal and unmanly possess the colonies in the present
contest, the name of ancestors will be remembered by future generations with
detestation.
The sun never shined on a
cause of greater worth. 'Tis not the affair of a city, a country, a province,
or a kingdom, but of a continent--of at least one eighth part of the habitable
globe. 'Tis not the concern of a day, a year, or an age; posterity are
virtually involved in the contest, and will be more or less affected, even to
the end of time, by the proceedings now. Now is the seed time of continental
union, faith and honor. The least fracture now will be like a name engraved
with the point of a pin on the tender rind of a young oak; The wound will
enlarge with the tree, and posterity read it in full grown characters.
By referring the matter from
argument to arms, a new era for politics is struck; a new method of thinking
hath arisen. All plans, proposals, &c. prior to the nineteenth of April, I.
E. to the commencement of hostilities, are like the almanacks of the last year;
which, though proper then, are superceded and useless now. Whatever was
advanced by the advocates on either side of the question then, terminated in
one and the same point, viz. a union with Great Britain; the only difference
between the parties was the method of effecting it; the one proposing force,
the other friendship; but it hath so far happened that the first hath failed,
and the second hath withdrawn her influence.
As much hath been said of the
advantages of reconciliation, which, like an agreeable dream, hath passed away
and left us as we were, it is but right, that we should examine the contrary
side of the argument, and inquire into some of the many material injuries which
these colonies sustain, and always will sustain, by being connected with, and
dependant on Great Britain. To examine that connexion and dependance, on the
principles of nature and common sense, to see what we have to trust to, if
separated, and what we are to expect, if dependant.
I have heard it asserted by
some, that as America
hath flourished under her former connexion with Great Britain, that the same
connexion is necessary towards her future happiness, and will always have the
same effect. Nothing can be more fallacious than this kind of argument. We may
as well assert that because a child has thrived upon milk, that it is never to
have meat, or that the first twenty years of our lives is to become a precedent
for the next twenty. But even this is admitting more than is true, for I answer
roundly, that America would have flourished as much, and probably much more,
had no European power had any thing to do with her. The commerce, by which she
hath enriched herself are the necessaries of life, and will always have a
market while eating is the custom of Europe.
But she has protected us, say
some. That she hath engrossed us is true, and defended the continent at our
expence as well as her own is admitted, and she would have defended Turkey from the
same motive, viz. the sake of trade and dominion.
Alas, we have been long led
away by ancient prejudices, and made large sacrifices to superstition. We have
boasted the protection of Great Britain, without considering, that her motive
was INTEREST not ATTACHMENT; that she did not protect us from OUR ENEMIES on
OUR ACCOUNT, but from HER ENEMIES on HER OWN ACCOUNT, from those who had no
quarrel with us on any OTHER ACCOUNT, and who will always be our enemies on the
SAME ACCOUNT. Let Britain
wave her pretensions to the continent, or the continent throw off the
dependance, and we should be at peace with France and Spain were they
at war with Britain.
The miseries of Hanover
last war ought to warn us against connexions.
It hath lately been asserted
in parliament, that the colonies have no relation to each other but through the
parent country, I. E. that Pennsylvania and the Jerseys, and so on for the
rest, are sister colonies by the way of England; this is certainly a very
round-about way of proving relationship, but it is the nearest and only true
way of proving enemyship, if I may so call it. France and Spain never
were, nor perhaps ever will be our enemies as AMERICANS, but as our being the
SUBJECTS OF GREAT BRITAIN.
But Britain is the
parent country, say some. Then the more shame upon her conduct. Even brutes do
not devour their young, nor savages make war upon their families; wherefore the
assertion, if true, turns to her reproach; but it happens not to be true, or
only partly so, and the phrase PARENT or MOTHER COUNTRY hath been jesuitically
adopted by the king and his parasites, with a low papistical design of gaining
an unfair bias on the credulous weakness of our minds. Europe,
and not England,
is the parent country of America.
This new world hath been the asylum for the persecuted lovers of civil and
religious liberty from EVERY PART of Europe.
Hither have they fled, not from the tender embraces of the mother, but from the
cruelty of the monster; and it is so far true of England, that the same tyranny
which drove the first emigrants from home, pursues their descendants still.
In this extensive quarter of
the globe, we forget the narrow limits of three hundred and sixty miles (the
extent of England)
and carry our friendship on a larger scale; we claim brotherhood with every
European christian, and triumph in the generosity of the sentiment.
It is pleasant to observe by
what regular gradations we surmount the force of local prejudice, as we enlarge
our acquaintance with the world. A man born in any town in England divided into
parishes, will naturally associate most with his fellow parishioners (because
their interests in many cases will be common) and distinguish him by the name
of NEIGHBOUR; if he meet him but a few miles from home, he drops the narrow
idea of a street, and salutes him by the name of TOWNSMAN; if he travel out of
the county, and meet him in any other, he forgets the minor divisions of street
and town, and calls him COUNTRYMAN; i. e. COUNTY-MAN; but if in their foreign
excursions they should associate in France or any other part of EUROPE, their
local remembrance would be enlarged into that of ENGLISHMEN. And by a just
parity of reasoning, all Europeans meeting in America, or any other quarter of
the globe, are COUNTRYMEN; for England, Holland, Germany, or Sweden, when
compared with the whole, stand in the same places on the larger scale, which
the divisions of street, town, and county do on the smaller ones; distinctions
too limited for continental minds. Not one third of the inhabitants, even of
this province, are of English descent. Wherefore I reprobate the phrase of
parent or mother country applied to England only, as being false,
selfish, narrow and ungenerous.
But admitting, that we were
all of English descent, what does it amount to? Nothing. Britain, being
now an open enemy, extinguishes every other name and title: And to say that
reconciliation is our duty, is truly farcical. The first king of England, of the
present line (William the Conqueror) was a Frenchman, and half the Peers of
England are descendants from the same country; wherefore, by the same method of
reasoning, England
ought to be governed by France.
Much hath been said of the
united strength of Britain
and the colonies, that in conjunction they might bid defiance to the world. But
this is mere presumption; the fate of war is uncertain, neither do the
expressions mean any thing; for this continent would never suffer itself to be
drained of inhabitants, to support the British arms in either Asia,
Africa, or Europe.
Besides, what have we to do
with setting the world at defiance? Our plan is commerce, and that, well
attended to, will secure us the peace and friendship of all Europe;
because, it is the interest of all Europe to
have America
a FREE PORT. Her trade will always be a protection, and her barrenness of gold
and silver secure her from invaders.
I challenge the warmest
advocate for reconciliation, to shew, a single advantage that this continent
can reap, by being connected with Great Britain. I repeat the
challenge, not a single advantage is derived. Our corn will fetch its price in
any market in Europe, and our imported goods
must be paid for buy them where we will.
But the injuries and
disadvantages we sustain by that connection, are without number; and our duty
to mankind at large, as well as to ourselves, instruct us to renounce the
alliance: Because, any submission to, or dependance on Great Britain, tends
directly to involve this continent in European wars and quarrels; and sets us
at variance with nations, who would otherwise seek our friendship, and against
whom, we have neither anger nor complaint. As Europe
is our market for trade, we ought to form no partial connection with any part
of it. It is the true interest of America to steer clear of European
contentions, which she never can do, while by her dependance on Britain, she is
made the make-weight in the scale on British politics.
Europe is too thickly planted with kingdoms
to be long at peace, and whenever a war breaks out between England and any
foreign power, the trade of America
goes to ruin, BECAUSE OF HER CONNECTION WITH BRITAIN. The next war may not turn
out like the last, and should it not, the advocates for reconciliation now will
be wishing for separation then, because, neutrality in that case, would be a
safer convoy than a man of war. Every thing that is right or natural pleads for
separation. The blood of the slain, the weeping voice of nature cries, 'TIS
TIME TO PART. Even the distance at which the Almighty hath placed England and America, is a
strong and natural proof, that the authority of the one, over the other, was
never the design of Heaven. The time likewise at which the continent was
discovered, adds weight to the argument, and the manner in which it was peopled
encreases the force of it. The reformation was preceded by the discovery of America, as if
the Almighty graciously meant to open a sanctuary to the persecuted in future
years, when home should afford neither friendship nor safety.
The authority of Great Britain
over this continent, is a form of government, which sooner or later must have
an end: And a serious mind can draw no true pleasure by looking forward, under
the painful and positive conviction, that what he calls "the present
constitution" is merely temporary. As parents, we can have no joy, knowing
that THIS GOVERNMENT is not sufficiently lasting to ensure any thing which we
may bequeath to posterity: And by a plain method of argument, as we are running
the next generation into debt, we ought to do the work of it, otherwise we use
them meanly and pitifully. In order to discover the line of our duty rightly,
we should take our children in our hand, and fix our station a few years
farther into life; that eminence will present a prospect, which a few present
fears and prejudices conceal from our sight.
Though I would carefully
avoid giving unnecessary offence, yet I am inclined to believe, that all those
who espouse the doctrine of reconciliation, may be included within the
following descriptions. Interested men, who are not to be trusted; weak men,
who CANNOT see; prejudiced men, who WILL NOT see; and a certain set of moderate
men, who think better of the European world than it deserves; and this last
class, by an ill-judged deliberation, will be the cause of more calamities to
this continent, than all the other three.
It is the good fortune of
many to live distant from the scene of sorrow; the evil is not sufficiently
brought to THEIR doors to make THEM feel the precariousness with which all
American property is possessed. But let our imaginations transport us for a few
moments to Boston,
that seat of wretchedness will teach us wisdom, and instruct us for ever to
renounce a power in whom we can have no trust. The inhabitants of that
unfortunate city, who but a few months ago were in ease and affluence, have
now, no other alternative than to stay and starve, or turn out to beg.
Endangered by the fire of their friends if they continue within the city, and
plundered by the soldiery if they leave it. In their present condition they are
prisoners without the hope of redemption, and in a general attack for their
relief, they would be exposed to the fury of both armies.
Men of passive tempers look
somewhat lightly over the offences of Britain, and, still hoping for the
best, are apt to call out, "COME, COME, WE SHALL BE FRIENDS AGAIN, FOR ALL
THIS." But examine the passions and feelings of mankind, Bring the
doctrine of reconciliation to the touchstone of nature, and then tell me,
whether you can hereafter love, honour, and faithfully serve the power that
hath carried fire and sword into your land? If you cannot do all these, then
are you only deceiving yourselves, and by your delay bringing ruin upon
posterity. Your future connection with Britain, whom you can neither love nor
honour, will be forced and unnatural, and being formed only on the plan of
present convenience, will in a little time fall into a relapse more wretched
than the first. But if you say, you can still pass the violations over, then I
ask, Hath your house been burnt? Hath your property been destroyed before your
face? Are your wife and children destitute of a bed to lie on, or bread to live
on? Have you lost a parent or a child by their hands, and yourself the ruined
and wretched survivor? If you have not, then are you not a judge of those who
have. But if you have, and still can shake hands with the murderers, then you
are unworthy of the name of husband, father, friend, or lover, and whatever may
be your rank or title in life, you have the heart of a coward, and the spirit
of a sycophant.
This is not inflaming or exaggerating
matters, but trying them by those feelings and affections which nature
justifies, and without which, we should be incapable of discharging the social
duties of life, or enjoying the felicities of it. I mean not to exhibit horror
for the purpose of provoking revenge, but to awaken us from fatal and unmanly
slumbers, that we may pursue determinately some fixed object. It is not in the
power of Britain
or of Europe to conquer America, if she
do not conquer herself by DELAY and TIMIDITY. The present winter is worth an
age if rightly employed, but if lost or neglected, the whole continent will
partake of the misfortune; and there is no punishment which that man will not
deserve, be he who, or what, or where he will, that may be the means of
sacrificing a season so precious and useful.
It is repugnant to reason, to
the universal order of things to all examples from former ages, to suppose,
that this continent can longer remain subject to any external power. The most
sanguine in Britain
does not think so. The utmost stretch of human wisdom cannot, at this time,
compass a plan short of separation, which can promise the continent even a
year's security. Reconciliation is NOW a falacious dream. Nature hath deserted
the connexion, and Art cannot supply her place. For, as Milton wisely expresses, "never can true
reconcilement grow where wounds of deadly hate have pierced so deep."
Every quiet method for peace
hath been ineffectual. Our prayers have been rejected with disdain; and only
tended to convince us, that nothing flatters vanity, or confirms obstinacy in
Kings more than repeated petitioning--and noting hath contributed more than
that very measure to make the Kings of Europe absolute: Witness Denmark and
Sweden. Wherefore, since nothing but blows will do, for God's sake, let us come
to a final separation, and not leave the next generation to be cutting throats,
under the violated unmeaning names of parent and child.
To say, they will never
attempt it again is idle and visionary, we thought so at the repeal of the
stamp act, yet a year or two undeceived us; as well may we suppose that
nations, which have been once defeated, will never renew the quarrel.
As to government matters, it
is not in the power of Britain to do this continent justice: The business of it
will soon be too weighty, and intricate, to be managed with any tolerable
degree of convenience, by a power, so distant from us, and so very ignorant of
us; for if they cannot conquer us, they cannot govern us. To be always running
three or four thousand miles with a tale or a petition, waiting four or five
months for an answer, which when obtained requires five or six more to explain
it in, will in a few years be looked upon as folly and childishness--There was
a time when it was proper, and there is a proper time for it to cease.
Small islands not capable of
protecting themselves, are the proper objects for kingdoms to take under their
care; but there is something very absurd, in supposing a continent to be
perpetually governed by an island. In no instance hath nature made the
satellite larger than its primary planet, and as England and America, with
respect to each other, reverses the common order of nature, it is evident they
belong to different systems: England to Europe, America to itself.
I am not induced by motives
of pride, party, or resentment to espouse the doctrine of separation and
independance; I am clearly, positively, and conscientiously persuaded that it
is the true interest of this continent to be so; that every thing short of THAT
is mere patchwork, that it can afford no lasting felicity,--that it is leaving
the sword to our children, and shrinking back at a time, when, a little more, a
little farther, would have rendered this continent the glory of the earth.
As Britain hath not manifested the
least inclination towards a compromise, we may be assured that no terms can be
obtained worthy the acceptance of the continent, or any ways equal to the
expense of blood and treasure we have been already put to.
The object, contended for,
ought always to bear some just proportion to the expense. The removal of North,
or the whole detestable junto, is a matter unworthy the millions we have
expended. A temporary stoppage of trade, was an inconvenience, which would have
sufficiently ballanced the repeal of all the acts complained of, had such
repeals been obtained; but if the whole continent must take up arms, if every
man must be a soldier, it is scarcely worth our while to fight against a
contemptible ministry only. Dearly, dearly, do we pay for the repeal of the
acts, if that is all we fight for; for in a just estimation, it is as great a
folly to pay a Bunker-hill price for law, as for land. As I have always
considered the independancy of this continent, as an event, which sooner or
later must arrive, so from the late rapid progress of the continent to
maturity, the event could not be far off. Wherefore, on the breaking out of
hostilities, it was not worth the while to have disputed a matter, which time
would have finally redressed, unless we meant to be in earnest; otherwise, it
is like wasting an estate on a suit at law, to regulate the trespasses of a
tenant, whose lease is just expiring. No man was a warmer wisher for
reconciliation than myself, before the fatal nineteenth of April 1775, but the
moment the event of that day was made known, I rejected the hardened, sullen
tempered Pharaoh of England for ever; and disdain the wretch, that with the
pretended title of FATHER OF HIS PEOPLE, can unfeelingly hear of their
slaughter, and composedly sleep with their blood upon his soul.
But admitting that matters
were now made up, what would be the event? I answer, the ruin of the continent.
And that for several reasons.
FIRST. The powers of
governing still remaining in the hands of the king, he will have a negative
over the whole legislation of this continent. And as he hath shewn himself such
an inveterate enemy to liberty, and discovered such a thirst for arbitrary
power; is he, or is he not, a proper man to say to these colonies, "YOU
SHALL MAKE NO LAWS BUT WHAT I PLEASE." And is there any inhabitant in
America so ignorant, as not to know, that according to what is called the
PRESENT CONSTITUTION, that this continent can make no laws but what the king
gives it leave to; and is there any man so unwise, as not to see, that
(considering what has happened) he will suffer no law to be made here, but such
as suit HIS purpose. We may be as effectually enslaved by the want of laws in America, as by
submitting to laws made for us in England. After matters are made up
(as it is called) can there be any doubt, but the whole power of the crown will
be exerted, to keep this continent as low and humble as possible? Instead of
going forward we shall go backward, or be perpetually quarrelling or
ridiculously petitioning. We are already greater than the king wishes us to be,
and will he not hereafter endeavour to make us less? To bring the matter to one
point. Is the power who is jealous of our prosperity, a proper power to govern
us? Whoever says NO to this question is an INDEPENDANT, for independancy means
no more, than, whether we shall make our own laws, or, whether the king, the
greatest enemy this continent hath, or can have, shall tell us, "THERE
SHALL BE NO LAWS BUT SUCH AS I LIKE."
But the king you will say has
a negative in England;
the people there can make no laws without his consent. In point of right and
good order, there is something very ridiculous, that a youth of twenty-one
(which hath often happened) shall say to several millions of people, older and
wiser than himself, I forbid this or that act of yours to be law. But in this
place I decline this sort of reply, though I will never cease to expose the
absurdity of it, and only answer, that England being the King's residence,
and America
not so, make quite another case. The king's negative HERE is ten times more
dangerous and fatal than it can be in England, for THERE he will scarcely
refuse his consent to a bill for putting England into as strong a state of
defence as possible, and in America
he would never suffer such a bill to be passed.
America is only a secondary object in the
system of British politics, England
consults the good of THIS country, no farther than it answers her OWN purpose.
Wherefore, her own interest leads her to suppress the growth of OURS in every
case which doth not promote her advantage, or in the least interferes with it.
A pretty state we should soon be in under such a second-hand government,
considering what has happened! Men do not change from enemies to friends by the
alteration of a name: And in order to shew that reconciliation NOW is a
dangerous doctrine, I affirm, THAT IT WOULD BE POLICY IN THE KING AT THIS TIME,
TO REPEAL THE ACTS FOR THE SAKE OF REINSTATING HIMSELF IN THE GOVERNMENT OF THE
PROVINCES; in order that HE MAY ACCOMPLISH BY CRAFT AND SUBTILITY, IN THE LONG
RUN, WHAT HE CANNOT DO BY FORCE AND VIOLENCE IN THE SHORT ONE. Reconciliation
and ruin are nearly related.
SECONDLY. That as even the
best terms, which we can expect to obtain, can amount to no more than a temporary
expedient, or a kind of government by guardianship, which can last no longer
than till the colonies come of age, so the general face and state of things, in
the interim, will be unsettled and unpromising. Emigrants of property will not
choose to come to a country whose form of government hangs but by a thread, and
who is every day tottering on the brink of commotion and disturbance; and
numbers of the present inhabitants would lay hold of the interval, to dispose
of their effects, and quit the continent.
But the most powerful of all
arguments, is, that nothing but independance, i. e. a continental form of
government, can keep the peace of the continent and preserve it inviolate from
civil wars. I dread the event of a reconciliation with Britain now, as it is
more than probable, that it will followed by a revolt somewhere or other, the
consequences of which may be far more fatal than all the malice of Britain.
Thousands are already ruined
by British barbarity; (thousands more will probably suffer the same fate.)
Those men have other feelings than us who have nothing suffered. All they NOW
possess is liberty, what they before enjoyed is sacrificed to its service, and
having nothing more to lose, they disdain submission. Besides, the general
temper of the colonies, towards a British government, will be like that of a
youth, who is nearly out of his time; they will care very little about her. And
a government which cannot preserve the peace, is no government at all, and in
that case we pay our money for nothing; and pray what is it that Britain can do,
whose power will be wholly on paper, should a civil tumult break out the very
day after reconciliation? I have heard some men say, many of whom I believe
spoke without thinking, that they dreaded an independance, fearing that it
would produce civil wars. It is but seldom that our first thoughts are truly
correct, and that is the case here; for there are ten times more to dread from
a patched up connexion than from independance. I make the sufferers case my own,
and I protest, that were I driven from house and home, my property destroyed,
and my circumstances ruined, that as a man, sensible of injuries, I could never
relish the doctrine of reconciliation, or consider myself bound thereby.
The colonies have manifested
such a spirit of good order and obedience to continental government, as is
sufficient to make every reasonable person easy and happy on that head. No man
can assign the least pretence for his fears, on any other grounds, that such as
are truly childish and ridiculous, viz. that one colony will be striving for
superiority over another.
Where there are no
distinctions there can be no superiority, perfect equality affords no
temptation. The republics of Europe are all
(and we may say always) in peace. Holland and Swisserland are without wars,
foreign or domestic: Monarchical governments, it is true, are never long at
rest; the crown itself is a temptation to enterprizing ruffians at HOME; and
that degree of pride and insolence ever attendant on regal authority, swells
into a rupture with foreign powers, in instances, where a republican
government, by being formed on more natural principles, would negotiate the
mistake.
If there is any true cause of
fear respecting independance, it is because no plan is yet laid down. Men do
not see their way out--Wherefore, as an opening into that business, I offer the
following hints; at the same time modestly affirming, that I have no other
opinion of them myself, than that they may be the means of giving rise to something
better. Could the straggling thoughts of individuals be collected, they would
frequently form materials for wise and able men to improve into useful matter.
Let the assemblies be annual,
with a President only. The representation more equal. Their business wholly
domestic, and subject to the authority of a Continental Congress.
Let each colony be divided
into six, eight, or ten, convenient districts, each district to send a proper
number of delegates to Congress, so that each colony send at least thirty. The
whole number in Congress will be least 390. Each Congress to sit and to choose
a president by the following method. When the delegates are met, let a colony
be taken from the whole thirteen colonies by lot, after which, let the whole
Congress choose (by ballot) a president from out of the delegates of THAT
province. In the next Congress, let a colony be taken by lot from twelve only,
omitting that colony from which the president was taken in the former Congress,
and so proceeding on till the whole thirteen shall have had their proper
rotation. And in order that nothing may pass into a law but what is
satisfactorily just, not less than three fifths of the Congress to be called a
majority. He that will promote discord, under a government so equally formed as
this, would have joined Lucifer in his revolt.
But as there is a peculiar
delicacy, from whom, or in what manner, this business must first arise, and as
it seems most agreeable and consistent that it should come from some
intermediate body between the governed and the governors, that is, between the
Congress and the people, let a CONTINENTAL CONFERENCE be held, in the following
manner, and for the following purpose.
A committee of twenty-six
members of Congress, viz. two for each colony. Two members for each House of
Assembly, or Provincial Convention; and five representatives of the people at
large, to be chosen in the capital city or town of each province, for, and in
behalf of the whole province, by as many qualified voters as shall think proper
to attend from all parts of the province for that purpose; or, if more
convenient, the representatives may be chosen in two or three of the most
populous parts thereof. In this conference, thus assembled, will be united, the
two grand principles of business, KNOWLEDGE and POWER. The members of Congress,
Assemblies, or Conventions, by having had experience in national concerns, will
be able and useful counsellors, and the whole, being impowered by the people,
will have a truly legal authority.
The conferring members being
met, let their business be to frame a CONTINENTAL CHARTER, or Charter of the
United Colonies; (answering to what is called the Magna Charta of England)
fixing the number and manner of choosing members of Congress, members of
Assembly, with their date of sitting, and drawing the line of business and
jurisdiction between them: (Always remembering, that our strength is
continental, not provincial:) Securing freedom and property to all men, and
above all things, the free exercise of religion, according to the dictates of
conscience; with such other matter as is necessary for a charter to contain.
Immediately after which, the said Conference to dissolve, and the bodies which
shall be chosen comformable to the said charter, to be the legislators and
governors of this continent for the time being: Whose peace and happiness, may
God preserve, Amen.
Should any body of men be
hereafter delegated for this or some similar purpose, I offer them the
following extracts from that wise observer on governments DRAGONETTI. "The
science" says he "of the politician consists in fixing the true point
of happiness and freedom. Those men would deserve the gratitude of ages, who
should discover a mode of government that contained the greatest sum of individual
happiness, with the least national expense." "DRAGONETTI ON VIRTUE
AND REWARDS."
But where says some is the
King of America? I'll tell you Friend, he reigns above, and doth not make havoc
of mankind like the Royal Brute of Britain. Yet that we may not appear to be
defective even in earthly honors, let a day be solemnly set apart for
proclaiming the charter; let it be brought forth placed on the divine law, the
word of God; let a crown be placed thereon, by which the world may know, that
so far as we approve as monarchy, that in America THE LAW IS KING. For as in
absolute governments the King is law, so in free countries the law OUGHT to be
King; and there ought to be no other. But lest any ill use should afterwards
arise, let the crown at the conclusion of the ceremony be demolished, and
scattered among the people whose right it is.
A government of our own is
our natural right: And when a man seriously reflects on the precariousness of
human affairs, he will become convinced, that it is infinitely wiser and safer,
to form a constitution of our own in a cool deliberate manner, while we have it
in our power, than to trust such an interesting event to time and chance. If we
omit it now, some, [*1] Massanello may hereafter arise, who laying hold of
popular disquietudes, may collect together the desperate and discontented, and
by assuming to themselves the powers of government, may sweep away the
liberties of the continent like a deluge. Should the government of America
return again into the hands of Britain, the tottering situation of things, will
be a temptation for some desperate adventurer to try his fortune; and in such a
case, what relief can Britain give? Ere she could hear the news, the fatal
business might be done; and ourselves suffering like the wretched Britons under
the oppression of the Conqueror. Ye that oppose independance now, ye know not
what ye do; ye are opening a door to eternal tyranny, by keeping vacant the
seat of government. There are thousands, and tens of thousands, who would think
it glorious to expel from the continent, that barbarous and hellish power,
which hath stirred up the Indians and Negroes to destroy us, the cruelty hath a
double guilt, it is dealing brutally by us, and treacherously by them.
To talk of friendship with
those in whom our reason forbids us to have faith, and our affections wounded
through a thousand pores instruct us to detest, is madness and folly. Every day
wears out the little remains of kindred between us and them, and can there be
any reason to hope, that as the relationship expires, the affection will
increase, or that we shall agree better, when we have ten times more and
greater concerns to quarrel over than ever?
Ye that tell us of harmony
and reconciliation, can ye restore to us the time that is past? Can ye give to
prostitution its former innocence? Neither can ye reconcile Britain and America. The
last cord now is broken, the people of England are presenting addresses
against us. There are injuries which nature cannot forgive; she would cease to
be nature if she did. As well can the lover forgive the ravisher of his
mistress, as the continent forgive the murders of Britain. The Almighty hath
implanted in us these unextinguishable feelings for good and wise purposes.
They are the guardians of his image in our hearts. They distinguish us from the
herd of common animals. The social compact would dissolve, and justice be
extirpated from the earth, or have only a casual existence were we callous to
the touches of affection. The robber, and the murderer, would often escape
unpunished, did not the injuries which our tempers sustain, provoke us into
justice.
O ye that love mankind! Ye
that dare oppose, not only the tyranny, but the tyrant, stand forth! Every spot
of the old world is overrun with oppression. Freedom hath been hunted round the
globe. Asia, and Africa,
have long expelled her. Europe regards her
like a stranger, and England
hath given her warning to depart. O! receive the fugitive, and prepare in time
an asylum for mankind.
Note 1 Thomas Anello,
otherwise Massanello, a fisherman of Naples, who after spiriting up his
countrymen in the public market place, against the oppression of the Spaniards,
to whom the place was then subject, prompted them to revolt, and in the space
of a day became king.
IV. Of the Present Ability of America, with
Some Miscellaneous Reflexions
I HAVE never met with a man,
either in England or America, who hath not confessed his opinion, that a
separation between the countries, would take place one time or other: And there
is no instance, in which we have shewn less judgment, than in endeavouring to
describe, what we call, the ripeness or fitness of the Continent for
independance.
As all men allow the measure,
and vary only in their opinion of the time, let us, in order to remove mistakes,
take a general survey of things, and endeavour, if possible, to find out the
VERY time. But we need not go far, the inquiry ceases at once, for, the TIME
HATH FOUND US. The general concurrence, the glorious union of all things prove
the fact.
It is not in numbers, but in
unity, that our great strength lies; yet our present numbers are sufficient to
repel the force of all the world. The Continent hath, at this time, the largest
body of armed and disciplined men of any power under Heaven; and is just arrived
at that pitch of strength, in which, no single colony is able to support
itself, and the whole, when united, can accomplish the matter, and either more,
or, less than this, might be fatal in its effects. Our land force is already
sufficient, and as to naval affairs, we cannot be insensible, that Britain would
never suffer an American man of war to be built, while the continent remained
in her hands. Wherefore, we should be no forwarder an hundred years hence in
that branch, than we are now; but the truth is, we should be less so, because
the timber of the country is every day diminishing, and that, which will remain
at last, will be far off and difficult to procure.
Were the continent crowded
with inhabitants, her sufferings under the present circumstances would be
intolerable. The more sea port towns we had, the more should we have both to
defend and to loose. Our present numbers are so happily proportioned to our
wants, that no man need be idle. The diminution of trade affords an army, and
the necessities of an army create a new trade.
Debts we have none; and
whatever we may contract on this account will serve as a glorious memento of
our virtue. Can we but leave posterity with a settled form of government, an
independant constitution of it's own, the purchase at any price will be cheap.
But to expend millions for the sake of getting a few vile acts repealed, and
routing the present ministry only, is unworthy the charge, and is using
posterity with the utmost cruelty; because it is leaving them the great work to
do, and a debt upon their backs, from which, they derive no advantage. Such a
thought is unworthy a man of honor, and is the true characteristic of a narrow
heart and a pedling politician.
The debt we may contract doth
not deserve our regard if the work be but accomplished. No nation ought to be
without a debt. A national debt is a national bond; and when it bears no
interest, is in no case a grievance. Britain is oppressed with a debt of
upwards of one hundred and forty millions sterling, for which she pays upwards
of four millions interest. And as a compensation for her debt, she has a large
navy; America
is without a debt, and without a navy; yet for the twentieth part of the
English national debt, could have a navy as large again. The navy of England is not
worth, at this time, more than three millions and an half sterling.
The first and second editions
of this pamphlet were published without the following calculations, which are
now given as a proof that the above estimation of the navy is a just one. SEE
ENTIC'S NAVAL HISTORY, INTRO. page 56.
The charge of building a ship
of each rate, and furnishing her with masts, yards, sails and rigging, together
with a proportion of eight months boatswain's and carpenter's sea-stores, as
calculated by Mr. Burchett, Secretary to the navy.
For a ship of a 100 guns | | 35,553 L. 90 | | 29,886 80 | | 23,638 70 | | 17,785 60 | | 14,197 50 | | 10,606 40 | | 7,558 30 | | 5,846 20 | | 3,710
And from hence it is easy to
sum up the value, or cost rather, of the whole British navy, which in the year
1757, when it was as its greatest glory consisted of the following ships and
guns.
SHIPS. | GUNS. | COST OF ONE. | COST OF ALL. 6 | 100 | 35,553 _l._ | 213,318 _l._ 12 | 90 | 29,886 | 358,632 12 | 80 | 23,638 | 283,656 43 | 70 | 17,785 | 746,755 35 | 60 | 14,197 | 496,895 40 | 50 | 10,606 | 424,240 45 | 40 | 7,558 | 340,110 58 | 20 | 3,710 | 215,180 85 | Sloops, bombs, and fireships, one with another, at | 2,000 | 170,000 Cost 3,266,786 Remains for guns | 233,214 Total. 3,500,000
No country on the globe is so
happily situated, so internally capable of raising a fleet as America. Tar,
timber, iron, and cordage are her natural produce. We need go abroad for
nothing. Whereas the Dutch, who make large profits by hiring out their ships of
war to the Spaniards and Portuguese, are obliged to import most of the
materials they use. We ought to view the building a fleet as an article of
commerce, it being the natural manufactory of this country. It is the best
money we can lay out. A navy when finished is worth more than it cost. And is
that nice point in national policy, in which commerce and protection are
united. Let us build; if we want them not, we can sell; and by that means
replace our paper currency with ready gold and silver.
In point of manning a fleet,
people in general run into great errors; it is not necessary that one fourth
part should be sailor. The Terrible privateer, Captain Death, stood the hottest
engagement of any ship last war, yet had not twenty sailors on board, though
her complement of men was upwards of two hundred. A few able and social sailors
will soon instruct a sufficient number of active landmen in the common work of
a ship. Wherefore, we never can be more capable to begin on maritime matters
than now, while our timber is standing, our fisheries blocked up, and our
sailors and shipwrights out of employ. Men of war, of seventy and eighty guns
were built forty years ago in New England, and
why not the same now? Ship-building is America's greatest pride, and in
which, she will in time excel the whole world. The great empires of the east
are mostly inland, and consequently excluded from the possibility of rivalling
her. Africa is in a state of barbarism; and no
power in Europe, hath either such an extent of
coast, or such an internal supply of materials. Where nature hath given the
one, she has withheld the other; to America only hath she been liberal
of both. The vast empire of Russia
is almost shut out from the sea; wherefore, her boundless forests, her tar,
iron, and cordage are only articles of commerce.
In point of safety, ought we
to be without a fleet? We are not the little people now, which we were sixty
years ago; at that time we might have trusted our property in the streets, or
fields rather; and slept securely without locks or bolts to our doors or
windows. The case now is altered, and our methods of defence, ought to improve
with our increase of property. A common pirate, twelve months ago, might have
come up the Delaware,
and laid the city of Philadelphia
under instant contribution, for what sum he pleased; and the same might have
happened to other places. Nay, any daring fellow, in a brig of fourteen or
sixteen guns, might have robbed the whole Continent, and carried off half a
million of money. These are circumstances which demand our attention, and point
out the necessity of naval protection.
Some, perhaps, will say, that
after we have made it up with Britain,
she will protect us. Can we be so unwise as to mean, that she shall keep a navy
in our harbours for that purpose? Common sense will tell us, that the power
which hath endeavoured to subdue us, is of all others, the most improper to
defend us. Conquest may be effected under the pretence of friendship; and
ourselves, after a long and brave resistance, be at last cheated into slavery.
And if her ships are not to be admitted into our harbours, I would ask, how is
she to protect us? A navy three or four thousand miles off can be of little
use, and on sudden emergencies, none at all. Wherefore, if we must hereafter
protect ourselves, why not do it for ourselves? Why do it for another?
The English list of ships of
war, is long and formidable, but not a tenth part of them are at any time fit
for service, numbers of them not in being; yet their names are pompously
continued in the list, if only a plank be left of the ship: and not a fifth
part, of such as are fit for service, can be spared on any one station at one
time. The East, and West Indies, Mediterranean, Africa,
and other parts over which Britain
extends her claim, make large demands upon her navy. From a mixture of
prejudice and inattention, we have contracted a false notion respecting the
navy of England, and have talked as if we should have the whole of it to
encounter at once, and for that reason, supposed, that we must have one as
large; which not being instantly practicable, have been made use of by a set of
disguised Tories to discourage our beginning thereon. Nothing can be farther
from truth than this; for if America had only a twentieth part of the naval
force of Britain, she would be by far an over match for her; because, as we
neither have, nor claim any foreign dominion, our whole force would be employed
on our own coast, where we should, in the long run, have two to one the
advantage of those who had three or four thousand miles to sail over, before
they could attack us, and the same distance to return in order to refit and
recruit. And although Britain
by her fleet, hath a check over our trade to Europe,
we have as large a one over her trade to the West Indies,
which, by laying in the neighbourhood of the Continent, is entirely at its
mercy.
Some method might be fallen
on to keep up a naval force in time of peace, if we should not judge it
necessary to support a constant navy. If premiums were to be given to
merchants, to build and employ in their service, ships mounted with twenty,
thirty, forty, or fifty guns, (the premiums to be in proportion to the loss of
bulk to the merchants) fifty or sixty of those ships, with a few guard ships on
constant duty, would keep up a sufficient navy, and that without burdening
ourselves with the evil so loudly complained of in England, of suffering their
fleet, in time of peace to lie rotting in the docks. To unite the sinews of
commerce and defence is sound policy; for when our strength and our riches,
play into each other's hand, we need fear no external enemy.
In almost every article of
defence we abound. Hemp flourishes even to rankness, so that we need not want
cordage. Our iron is superior to that of other countries. Our small arms equal
to any in the world. Cannons we can cast at pleasure. Saltpetre and gunpowder
we are every day producing. Our knowledge is hourly improving. Resolution is
our inherent character, and courage hath never yet forsaken us. Wherefore, what
is it that we want? Why is it that we hesitate? From Britain we can expect nothing but ruin.
If she is once admitted to the government of America again, this Continent will
not be worth living in. Jealousies will be always arising; insurrections will
be constantly happening; and who will go forth to quell them? Who will venture
his life to reduce his own countrymen to a foreign obedience? The difference
between Pennsylvania
and Connecticut,
respecting some unlocated lands, shews the insignificance of a British
government, and fully proves, that nothing but Continental authority can
regulate Continental matters.
Another reason why the
present time is preferable to all others, is, that the fewer our numbers are,
the more land there is yet unoccupied, which instead of being lavished by the
king on his worthless dependents, may be hereafter applied, not only to the
discharge of the present debt, but to the constant support of government. No
nation under heaven hath such an advantage as this.
The infant state of the
Colonies, as it is called, so far from being against, is an argument in favor
of independance. We are sufficiently numerous, and were we more so, we might be
less united. It is a matter worthy of observation, that the more a country is
peopled, the smaller their armies are. In military numbers, the ancients far
exceeded the moderns: and the reason is evident, for trade being the
consequence of population, men become too much absorbed thereby to attend to
any thing else. Commerce diminishes the spirit, both of patriotism and military
defence. And history sufficiently informs us, that the bravest achievements
were always accomplished in the non age of a nation. With the increase of
commerce, England
hath lost its spirit. The city of London,
notwithstanding its numbers, submits to continued insults with the patience of
a coward. The more men have to lose, the less willing are they to venture. The
rich are in general slaves to fear, and submit to courtly power with the
trembling duplicity of a Spaniel.
Youth is the seed time of
good habits, as well in nations as in individuals. It might be difficult, if
not impossible, to form the Continent into one government half a century hence.
The vast variety of interests, occasioned by an increase of trade and
population, would create confusion. Colony would be against colony. Each being
able might scorn each other's assistance; and while the proud and foolish
gloried in their little distinctions, the wise would lament, that the union had
not been formed before. Wherefore, the PRESENT TIME is the TRUE TIME for
establishing it. The intimacy which is contracted in infancy, and the
friendship which is formed in misfortune, are, of all others, the most lasting
and unalterable. Our present union is marked with both these characters: we are
young, and we have been distressed; but our concord hath withstood our troubles,
and fixes a memorable area for posterity to glory in.
The present time, likewise,
is that peculiar time, which never happens to a nation but once, VIZ. the time
of forming itself into a government. Most nations have let slip the
opportunity, and by that means have been compelled to receive laws from their
conquerors, instead of making laws for themselves. First, they had a king, and
then a form of government; whereas, the articles or charter of government,
should be formed first, and men delegated to execute them afterwards: but from
the errors of other nations, let us learn wisdom, and lay hold of the present
opportunity--TO BEGIN GOVERNMENT AT THE RIGHT END.
When William the Conqueror
subdued England, he gave them law at the point of the sword; and until we
consent, that the seat of government, in America, be legally and
authoritatively occupied, we shall be in danger of having it filled by some
fortunate ruffian, who may treat us in the same manner, and then, where will be
our freedom? Where our property?
As to religion, I hold it to
be the indispensible duty of all government, to protect all conscientious
professors thereof, and I know of no other business which government hath to do
therewith. Let a man throw aside that narrowness of soul, that selfishness of
principle, which the niggards of all professions are so unwilling to part with,
and he will be at once delivered of his fears on that head. Suspicion is the
companion of mean souls, and the bane of all good society. For myself, I fully
and conscientiously believe, that it is the will of the Almighty, that there
should be diversity of religious opinions among us: It affords a larger field
for our Christian kindness. Were we all of one way of thinking, our religious
dispositions would want matter for probation; and on this liberal principle, I
look on the various denominations among us, to be like children of the same
family, differing only, in what is called, their Christian names.
In page [III par 47], I threw
out a few thoughts on the propriety of a Continental Charter, (for I only
presume to offer hints, not plans) and in this place, I take the liberty of
rementioning the subject, by observing, that a charter is to be understood as a
bond of solemn obligation, which the whole enters into, to support the right of
every separate part, whether or religion, personal freedom, or property. A firm
bargain and a right reckoning make long friends.
In a former page I likewise
mentioned the necessity of a large and equal representation; and there is no
political matter which more deserves our attention. A small number of electors,
or a small number of representatives, are equally dangerous. But if the number
of the representatives be not only small, but unequal, the danger is increased.
As an instance of this, I mention the following; when the Associators petition
was before the House of Assembly of Pennsylvania; twenty-eight members only
were present, all the Bucks county members, being eight, voted against it, and
had seven of the Chester members done the same, this whole province had been
governed by two counties only, and this danger it is always exposed to. The
unwarrantable stretch likewise, which that house made in their last sitting, to
gain an undue authority over the Delegates of that province, ought to warn the
people at large, how they trust power out of their own hands. A set of
instructions for the Delegates were put together, which in point of sense and
business would have dishonored a schoolboy, and after being approved by a FEW,
a VERY FEW without doors, were carried into the House, and there passed IN
BEHALF OF THE WHOLE COLONY; whereas, did the whole colony know, with what
ill-will that House hath entered on some necessary public measures, they would
not hesitate a moment to think them unworthy of such a trust.
Immediate necessity makes
many things convenient, which if continued would grow into oppressions.
Expedience and right are different things. When the calamities of America
required a consultation, there was no method so ready, or at that time so
proper, as to appoint persons from the several Houses of Assembly for that
purpose; and the wisdom with which they have proceeded hath preserved this
continent from ruin. But as it is more than probable that we shall never be
without a CONGRESS, every well wisher to good order, must own, that the mode
for choosing members of that body, deserves consideration. And I put it as a
question to those, who make a study of mankind, whether REPRESENTATION AND
ELECTION is not too great a power for one and the same body of men to possess?
When we are planning for posterity, we ought to remember, that virtue is not
hereditary.
It is from our enemies that
we often gain excellent maxims, and are frequently surprised into reason by
their mistakes. Mr. Cornwall (one of the Lords of the Treasury) treated the
petition of the New York Assembly with contempt, because THAT House, he said,
consisted but of twenty-six members, which trifling number, he argued, could
not with decency be put for the whole. We thank him for his involuntary
honesty. [*Note 1]
TO CONCLUDE, however strange
it may appear to some, or however unwilling they may be to think so, matters
not, but many strong and striking reasons may be given, to shew, that nothing
can settle our affairs so expeditiously as an open and determined declaration
for independance. Some of which are,
FIRST--It is the custom of
nations, when any two are at war, for some other powers, not engaged in the
quarrel, to step in as mediators, and bring about the preliminaries of a peace:
but while America calls herself the Subject of Great Britain, no power, however
well disposed she may be, can offer her mediation. Wherefore, in our present
state we may quarrel on for ever.
SECONDLY--It is unreasonable
to suppose, that France or Spain will give us any kind of assistance, if we
mean only, to make use of that assistance for the purpose of repairing the
breach, and strengthening the connection between Britain and America; because,
those powers would be sufferers by the consequences.
THIRDLY--While we profess
ourselves the subjects of Britain,
we must, in the eye of foreign nations, be considered as rebels. The precedent
is somewhat dangerous to THEIR PEACE, for men to be in arms under the name of
subjects; we, on the spot, can solve the paradox: but to unite resistance and
subjection, requires an idea much too refined for the common understanding.
FOURTHLY--Were a manifesto to
be published, and despatched to foreign courts, setting forth the miseries we
have endured, and the peaceable methods we have ineffectually used for redress;
declaring, at the same time, that not being able, any longer, to live happily
or safely under the cruel disposition of the British court, we had been driven
to the necessity of breaking off all connections with her; at the same time,
assuring all such courts of our peacable disposition towards them, and of our
desire of entering into trade with them: Such a memorial would produce more
good effects to this Continent, than if a ship were freighted with petitions to
Britain.
Under our present
denomination of British subjects, we can neither be received nor heard abroad:
The custom of all courts is against us, and will be so, until, by an
independance, we take rank with other nations.
These proceedings may at
first appear strange and difficult; but, like all other steps which we have
already passed over, will in a little time become familiar and agreeable; and,
until an independance is declared, the Continent will feel itself like a man
who continues putting off some unpleasant business from day to day, yet knows
it must be done, hates to set about it, wishes it over, and is continually
haunted with the thoughts of its necessity.
Note 1 Those who would fully
understand of what great consequence a large and equal representation is to a
state, should read Burgh's political Disquisitions.
Appendix
APPENDIX
SINCE the publication of the
first edition of this pamphlet, or rather, on the same day on which it came
out, the King's Speech made its appearance in this city. Had the spirit of
prophecy directed the birth of this production, it could not have brought it
forth, at a more seasonable juncture, or a more necessary time. The bloody
mindedness of the one, shew the necessity of pursuing the doctrine of the other.
Men read by way of revenge. And the Speech instead of terrifying, prepared a
way for the manly principles of Independance.
Ceremony, and even, silence,
from whatever motive they may arise, have a hurtful tendency, when they give
the least degree of countenance to base and wicked performances; wherefore, if
this maxim be admitted, it naturally follows, that the King's Speech, as being
a piece of finished villany, deserved, and still deserves, a general execration
both by the Congress and the people. Yet, as the domestic tranquillity of a
nation, depends greatly, on the CHASTITY of what may properly be called
NATIONAL MANNERS, it is often better, to pass some things over in silent
disdain, than to make use of such new methods of dislike, as might introduce
the least innovation, on that guardian of our peace and safety. And, perhaps,
it is chiefly owing to this prudent delicacy, that the King's Speech, hath not,
before now, suffered a public execution. The Speech if it may be called one, is
nothing better than a wilful audacious libel against the truth, the common
good, and the existence of mankind; and is a formal and pompous method of
offering up human sacrifices to the pride of tyrants. But this general massacre
of mankind, is one of the privileges, and the certain consequence of Kings; for
as nature knows them NOT, they know NOT HER, and although they are beings of
our OWN creating, they know not US, and are become the gods of their creators.
The Speech hath one good quality, which is, that it is not calculated to
deceive, neither can we, even if we would, be deceived by it. Brutality and
tyranny appear on the face of it. It leaves us at no loss: And every line
convinces, even in the moment of reading, that He, who hunts the woods for
prey, the naked and untutored Indian, is less a Savage than the King of
Britain.
Sir John Dalrymple, the
putative father of a whining jesuitical piece, fallaciously called, "THE
ADDRESS OF THE PEOPLE OF ENGLAND TO THE INHABITANTS OF AMERICA," hath,
perhaps, from a vain supposition, that the people HERE were to be frightened at
the pomp and description of a king, given, (though very unwisely on his part)
the real character of the present one: "But," says this writer,
"if you are inclined to pay compliments to an administration, which we do
not complain of," (meaning the Marquis of Rockingham's at the repeal of
the Stamp Act) "it is very unfair in you to withhold them from that
prince, BY WHOSE NOD ALONE THEY WERE PERMITTED TO DO ANY THING." This is
toryism with a witness! Here is idolatry even without a mask: And he who can so
calmly hear, and digest such doctrine, hath forfeited his claim to
rationality--an apostate from the order of manhood; and ought to be
considered--as one, who hath, not only given up the proper dignity of a man,
but sunk himself beneath the rank of animals, and contemptibly crawls through
the world like a worm.
However, it matters very
little now, what the king of England either says or does; he hath wickedly
broken through every moral and human obligation, trampled nature and conscience
beneath his feet; and by a steady and constitutional spirit of insolence and
cruelty, procured for himself an universal hatred. It is NOW the interest of America to
provide for herself. She hath already a large and young family, whom it is more
her duty to take care of, than to be granting away her property, to support a
power who is become a reproach to the names of men and christians--YE, whose
office it is to watch over the morals of a nation, of whatsoever sect or denomination
ye are of, as well as ye, who, are more immediately the guardians of the public
liberty, if ye wish to preserve your native country uncontaminated by European
corruption, ye must in secret wish a separation--But leaving the moral part to
private reflection, I shall chiefly confine my farther remarks to the following
heads.
First, That it is the
interest of America
to be separated from Britain.
Secondly, Which is the
easiest and most practicable plan, RECONCILIATION or INDEPENDANCE? with some
occasional remarks.
In support of the first, I
could, if I judged it proper, produce the opinion of some of the ablest and
most experienced men on this continent; and whose sentiments, on that head, are
not yet publicly known. It is in reality a self-evident position: For no nation
in a state of foreign dependance, limited in its commerce, and cramped and
fettered in its legislative powers, can ever arrive at any material eminence. America doth
not yet know what opulence is; and although the progress which she hath made
stands unparalleled in the history of other nations, it is but childhood,
compared with what she would be capable of arriving at, had she, as she ought
to have, the legislative powers in her own hands. England is, at this time, proudly
coveting what would do her no good, were she to accomplish it; and the
Continent hesitating on a matter, which will be her final ruin if neglected. It
is the commerce and not the conquest of America, by which England is to
be benefited, and that would in a great measure continue, were the countries as
independant of each other as France
and Spain;
because in many articles, neither can go to a better market. But it is the
independance of this country of Britain
or any other, which is now the main and only object worthy of contention, and
which, like all other truths discovered by necessity, will appear clearer and
stronger every day.
First, Because it will come
to that one time or other.
Secondly, Because, the longer
it is delayed the harder it will be to accomplish.
I have frequently amused
myself both in public and private companies, with silently remarking, the
specious errors of those who speak without reflecting. And among the many which
I have heard, the following seems most general, viz. that had this rupture
happened forty or fifty years hence, instead of NOW, the Continent would have
been more able to have shaken off the dependance. To which I reply, that our
military ability AT THIS TIME, arises from the experience gained in the last
war, and which in forty or fifty years time, would have been totally extinct.
The Continent, would not, by that time, have had a General, or even a military
officer left; and we, or those who may succeed us, would have been as ignorant
of martial matters as the ancient Indians: And this single position, closely
attended to, will unanswerably prove, that the present time is preferable to
all others. The argument turns thus--at the conclusion of the last war, we had
experience, but wanted numbers; and forty or fifty years hence, we should have
numbers, without experience; wherefore, the proper point of time, must be some
particular point between the two extremes, in which a sufficiency of the former
remains, and a proper increase of the latter is obtained: And that point of
time is the present time.
The reader will pardon this
digression, as it does not properly come under the head I first set out with,
and to which I again return by the following position, viz.
Should affairs be patched up
with Britain,
and she to remain the governing and sovereign power of America,
(which, as matters are now circumstanced, is giving up the point intirely) we
shall deprive ourselves of the very means of sinking the debt we have, or may
contract. The value of the back lands which some of the provinces are
clandestinely deprived of, by the unjust extension of the limits of Canada, valued
only at five pounds sterling per hundred acres, amount to upwards of
twenty-five millions, Pennsylvania
currency; and the quit-rents at one penny sterling per acre, to two millions
yearly.
It is by the sale of those
lands that the debt may be sunk, without burthen to any, and the quit-rent
reserved thereon, will always lessen, and in time, will wholly support the
yearly expence of government. It matters not how long the debt is in paying, so
that the lands when sold be applied to the discharge of it, and for the
execution of which, the Congress for the time being, will be the continental
trustees.
I proceed now to the second
head, viz. Which is the easiest and most practicable plan, RECONCILIATION or
INDEPENDANCE; with some occasional remarks.
He who takes nature for his
guide is not easily beaten out of his argument, and on that ground, I answer
GENERALLYUTHAT INDEPENDANCE BEING A SINGLE SIMPLE LINE, CONTAINED WITHIN
OURSELVES; AND RECONCILIATION, A MATTER EXCEEDINGLY PERPLEXED AND COMPLICATED,
AND IN WHICH, A TREACHEROUS CAPRICIOUS COURT IS TO INTERFERE, GIVES THE ANSWER
WITHOUT A DOUBT.
The present state of America is
truly alarming to every man who is capable of reflexion. Without law, without
government, without any other mode of power than what is founded on, and
granted by courtesy. Held together by an unexampled concurrence of sentiment,
which, is nevertheless subject to change, and which, every secret enemy is
endeavouring to dissolve. Our present condition, is, Legislation without law;
wisdom without a plan; constitution without a name; and, what is strangely
astonishing, perfect Independance contending for dependance. The instance is
without a precedent; the case never existed before; and who can tell what may
be the event? The property of no man is secure in the present unbraced system
of things. The mind of the multitude is left at random, and seeing no fixed
object before them, they pursue such as fancy or opinion starts. Nothing is
criminal; there is no such thing as treason; wherefore, every one thinks
himself at liberty to act as he pleases. The Tories dared not have assembled
offensively, had they known that their lives, by that act, were forfeited to the
laws of the state. A line of distinction should be drawn, between, English
soldiers taken in battle, and inhabitants of America taken in arms. The first
are prisoners, but the latter traitors. The one forfeits his liberty, the other
his head.
Notwithstanding our wisdom,
there is a visible feebleness in some of our proceedings which gives
encouragement to dissentions. The Continental Belt is too loosely buckled. And
if something is not done in time, it will be too late to do any thing, and we
shall fall into a state, in which, neither RECONCILIATION nor INDEPENDANCE will
be practicable. The king and his worthless adherents are got at their old game
of dividing the Continent, and there are not wanting among us, Printers, who
will be busy spreading specious falsehoods. The artful and hypocritical letter
which appeared a few months ago in two of the New York papers, and likewise in
two others, is an evidence that there are men who want either judgment or
honesty.
It is easy getting into holes
and corners and talking of reconciliation: But do such men seriously consider,
how difficult the task is, and how dangerous it may prove, should the Continent
divide thereon. Do they take within their view, all the various orders of men
whose situation and circumstances, as well as their own, are to be considered
therein. Do they put themselves in the place of the sufferer whose ALL is
ALREADY gone, and of the soldier, who hath quitted ALL for the defence of his
country. If their ill judged moderation be suited to their own private
situations ONLY, regardless of others, the event will convince them, that
"they are reckoning without their Host."
Put us, say some, on the
footing we were on in sixty-three: To which I answer, the request is not NOW in
the power of Britain to comply with, neither will she propose it; but if it
were, and even should be granted, I ask, as a reasonable question, By what
means is such a corrupt and faithless court to be kept to its engagements?
Another parliament, nay, even the present, may hereafter repeal the obligation,
on the pretence, of its being violently obtained, or unwisely granted; and in
that case, Where is our redress?--No going to law with nations; cannon are the
barristers of Crowns; and the sword, not of justice, but of war, decides the
suit. To be on the footing of sixty-three, it is not sufficient, that the laws
only be put on the same state, but, that our circumstances, likewise, be put on
the same state; Our burnt and destroyed towns repaired or built up, our private
losses made good, our public debts (contracted for defence) discharged;
otherwise, we shall be millions worse than we were at that enviable period.
Such a request, had it been complied with a year ago, would have won the heart
and soul of the Continent--but now it is too late, "The Rubicon is
passed."
Besides, the taking up arms,
merely to enforce the repeal of a pecuniary law, seems as unwarrantable by the
divine law, and as repugnant to human feelings, as the taking up arms to
enforce obedience thereto. The object, on either side, doth not justify the
means; for the lives of men are too valuable to be cast away on such trifles.
It is the violence which is done and threatened to our persons; the destruction
of our property by an armed force; the invasion of our country by fire and
sword, which conscientiously qualifies the use of arms: And the instant, in
which such a mode of defence became necessary, all subjection to Britain ought
to have ceased; and the independancy of America, should have been considered,
as dating its era from, and published by, THE FIRST MUSKET THAT WAS FIRED
AGAINST HER. This line is a line of consistency; neither drawn by caprice, nor
extended by ambition; but produced by a chain of events, of which the colonies
were not the authors.
I shall conclude these
remarks, with the following timely and well intended hints. We ought to
reflect, that there are three different ways, by which an independancy may
hereafter be effected; and that ONE of those THREE, will one day or other, be
the fate of America, viz. By the legal voice of the people in Congress; by a
military power; or by a mob: It may not always happen that our soldiers are
citizens, and the multitude a body of reasonable men; virtue, as I have already
remarked, is not hereditary, neither is it perpetual. Should an independancy be
brought about by the first of those means, we have every opportunity and every
encouragement before us, to form the noblest purest constitution on the face of
the earth. We have it in our power to begin the world over again. A situation,
similar to the present, hath not happened since the days of Noah until now. The
birthday of a new world is at hand, and a race of men, perhaps as numerous as
all Europe contains, are to receive their portion of freedom from the event of a
few months. The Reflexion is awful--and in this point of view, How trifling,
how ridiculous, do the little, paltry cavellings, of a few weak or interested
men appear, when weighed against the business of a world.
Should we neglect the present
favorable and inviting period, and an Independance be hereafter effected by any
other means, we must charge the consequence to ourselves, or to those rather,
whose narrow and prejudiced souls, are habitually opposing the measure, without
either inquiring or reflecting. There are reasons to be given in support of
Independance, which men should rather privately think of, than be publicly told
of. We ought not now to be debating whether we shall be independant or not,
but, anxious to accomplish it on a firm, secure, and honorable basis, and
uneasy rather that it is not yet began upon. Every day convinces us of its
necessity. Even the Tories (if such beings yet remain among us) should, of all
men, be the most solicitous to promote it; for, as the appointment of committees
at first, protected them from popular rage, so, a wise and well established
form of government, will be the only certain means of continuing it securely to
them. WHEREFORE, if they have not virtue enough to be WHIGS, they ought to have
prudence enough to wish for Independance.
In short, Independance is the
only BOND that can tye and keep us together. We shall then see our object, and
our ears will be legally shut against the schemes of an intriguing, as well, as
a cruel enemy. We shall then too, be on a proper footing, to treat with
Britain; for there is reason to conclude, that the pride of that court, will be
less hurt by treating with the American states for terms of peace, than with
those, whom she denominates, "rebellious subjects," for terms of
accommodation. It is our delaying it that encourages her to hope for conquest,
and our backwardness tends only to prolong the war. As we have, without any
good effect therefrom, withheld our trade to obtain a redress of our
grievances, let us NOW try the alternative, by INDEPENDANTLY redressing them
ourselves, and then offering to open the trade. The mercantile and reasonable
part in England, will be still with us; because, peace WITH trade, is
preferable to war WITHOUT it. And if this offer be not accepted, other courts
may be applied to.
On these grounds I rest the
matter. And as no offer hath yet been made to refute the doctrine contained in
the former editions of this pamphlet, it is a negative proof, that either the
doctrine cannot be refuted, or, that the party in favour of it are too numerous
to be opposed. WHEREFORE, instead of gazing at each other with suspicious or
doubtful curiosity, let each of us, hold out to his neighbour the hearty hand
of friendship, and unite in drawing a line, which, like an act of oblivion,
shall bury in forgetfulness every former dissention. Let the names of Whig and
Tory be extinct; and let none other be heard among us, than those of A GOOD
CITIZEN, AN OPEN AND RESOLUTE FRIEND, AND A VIRTUOUS SUPPORTER OF THE RIGHTS OF
MANKIND AND OF THE FREE AND INDEPENDENT STATES OF AMERICA.
The Crisis Number I
by Thomas Paine
I.
THESE are the times that try men's souls. The summer
soldier and the sunshine patriot will, in this crisis, shrink from the service
of their country; but he that stands it now, deserves the love and thanks of man
and woman. Tyranny, like hell, is not easily conquered; yet we have this
consolation with us, that the harder the conflict, the more glorious the
triumph. What we obtain too cheap, we esteem too lightly: it is dearness only
that gives every thing its value. Heaven knows how to put a proper price upon
its goods; and it would be strange indeed if so celestial an article as freedom
should not be highly rated. Britain, with an army to enforce her tyranny, has
declared that she has a right (not only to tax) but "to bind us in all cases
whatsoever," and if being bound in that manner, is not slavery, then is there
not such a thing as slavery upon earth. Even the expression is impious; for so
unlimited a power can belong only to God.
Whether the independence of the continent was declared too
soon, or delayed too long, I will not now enter into as an argument; my own
simple opinion is, that had it been eight months earlier, it would have been
much better. We did not make a proper use of last winter, neither could we,
while we were in a dependent state. However, the fault, if it were one, was all
our own*; we have none to blame but ourselves. But no great deal is lost yet.
All that Howe has been doing for this month past, is rather a ravage than a
conquest, which the spirit of the Jerseys, a year ago, would have quickly
repulsed, and which time and a little resolution will soon recover.
* The present winter is worth an age, if rightly
employed; but, if lost or neglected, the whole continent will partake of the
evil; and there is no punishment that man does not deserve, be he who, or
what, or where he will, that may be the means of sacrificing a season so
precious and useful.
I have as little superstition in me as any man living, but my
secret opinion has ever been, and still is, that God Almighty will not give up a
people to military destruction, or leave them unsupportedly to perish, who have
so earnestly and so repeatedly sought to avoid the calamities of war, by every
decent method which wisdom could invent. Neither have I so much of the infidel
in me, as to suppose that He has relinquished the government of the world, and
given us up to the care of devils; and as I do not, I cannot see on what grounds
the king of Britain can look up to heaven for help against us: a common
murderer, a highwayman, or a house-breaker, has as good a pretence as he.
'Tis surprising to see how rapidly a panic will sometimes run
through a country. All nations and ages have been subject to them. Britain has
trembled like an ague at the report of a French fleet of flat-bottomed boats;
and in the fourteenth [fifteenth] century the whole English army, after ravaging
the kingdom of France, was driven back like men petrified with fear; and this
brave exploit was performed by a few broken forces collected and headed by a
woman, Joan of Arc. Would that heaven might inspire some Jersey maid to spirit
up her countrymen, and save her fair fellow sufferers from ravage and
ravishment! Yet panics, in some cases, have their uses; they produce as much
good as hurt. Their duration is always short; the mind soon grows through them,
and acquires a firmer habit than before. But their peculiar advantage is, that
they are the touchstones of sincerity and hypocrisy, and bring things and men to
light, which might otherwise have lain forever undiscovered. In fact, they have
the same effect on secret traitors, which an imaginary apparition would have
upon a private murderer. They sift out the hidden thoughts of man, and hold them
up in public to the world. Many a disguised Tory has lately shown his head, that
shall penitentially solemnize with curses the day on which Howe arrived upon the
Delaware.
As I was with the troops at Fort Lee, and marched with them to
the edge of Pennsylvania, I am well acquainted with many circumstances, which
those who live at a distance know but little or nothing of. Our situation there
was exceedingly cramped, the place being a narrow neck of land between the North
River and the Hackensack. Our force was inconsiderable, being not one-fourth so
great as Howe could bring against us. We had no army at hand to have relieved
the garrison, had we shut ourselves up and stood on our defence. Our ammunition,
light artillery, and the best part of our stores, had been removed, on the
apprehension that Howe would endeavor to penetrate the Jerseys, in which case
Fort Lee could be of no use to us; for it must occur to every thinking man,
whether in the army or not, that these kind of field forts are only for
temporary purposes, and last in use no longer than the enemy directs his force
against the particular object which such forts are raised to defend. Such was
our situation and condition at Fort Lee on the morning of the 20th of November,
when an officer arrived with information that the enemy with 200 boats had
landed about seven miles above; Major General [Nathaniel] Green, who commanded
the garrison, immediately ordered them under arms, and sent express to General
Washington at the town of Hackensack, distant by the way of the ferry = six
miles. Our first object was to secure the bridge over the Hackensack, which laid
up the river between the enemy and us, about six miles from us, and three from
them. General Washington arrived in about three-quarters of an hour, and marched
at the head of the troops towards the bridge, which place I expected we should
have a brush for; however, they did not choose to dispute it with us, and the
greatest part of our troops went over the bridge, the rest over the ferry,
except some which passed at a mill on a small creek, between the bridge and the
ferry, and made their way through some marshy grounds up to the town of
Hackensack, and there passed the river. We brought off as much baggage as the
wagons could contain, the rest was lost. The simple object was to bring off the
garrison, and march them on till they could be strengthened by the Jersey or
Pennsylvania militia, so as to be enabled to make a stand. We staid four days at
Newark, collected our out-posts with some of the Jersey militia, and marched out
twice to meet the enemy, on being informed that they were advancing, though our
numbers were greatly inferior to theirs. Howe, in my little opinion, committed a
great error in generalship in not throwing a body of forces off from Staten
Island through Amboy, by which means he might have seized all our stores at
Brunswick, and intercepted our march into Pennsylvania; but if we believe the
power of hell to be limited, we must likewise believe that their agents are
under some providential control.
I shall not now attempt to give all the particulars of our
retreat to the Delaware; suffice it for the present to say, that both officers
and men, though greatly harassed and fatigued, frequently without rest,
covering, or provision, the inevitable consequences of a long retreat, bore it
with a manly and martial spirit. All their wishes were one, which was, that the
country would turn out and help them to drive the enemy back. Voltaire has
remarked that King William never appeared to full advantage but in difficulties
and in action; the same remark may be made on General Washington, for the
character fits him. There is a natural firmness in some minds which cannot be
unlocked by trifles, but which, when unlocked, discovers a cabinet of fortitude;
and I reckon it among those kind of public blessings, which we do not
immediately see, that God hath blessed him with uninterrupted health, and given
him a mind that can even flourish upon care.
I shall conclude this paper with some miscellaneous remarks on
the state of our affairs; and shall begin with asking the following question,
Why is it that the enemy have left the New England provinces, and made these
middle ones the seat of war? The answer is easy: New England is not infested
with Tories, and we are. I have been tender in raising the cry against these
men, and used numberless arguments to show them their danger, but it will not do
to sacrifice a world either to their folly or their baseness. The period is now
arrived, in which either they or we must change our sentiments, or one or both
must fall. And what is a Tory? Good God! what is he? I should not be afraid to
go with a hundred Whigs against a thousand Tories, were they to attempt to get
into arms. Every Tory is a coward; for servile, slavish, self-interested fear is
the foundation of Toryism; and a man under such influence, though he may be
cruel, never can be brave.
BUT, before the line of irrecoverable separation be drawn between us, let
us reason the matter together: Your conduct is an invitation to the enemy, yet
not one in a thousand of you has heart enough to join him. Howe is as much
deceived by you as the American cause is injured by you. He expects you will all
take up arms, and flock to his standard, with muskets on your shoulders. Your
opinions are of no use to him, unless you support him personally, for 'tis
soldiers, and not Tories, that he wants.
I once felt all that kind of anger, which a man ought to feel, against the mean
principles that are held by the Tories: a noted one, who kept a tavern at Amboy,
was standing at his door, with as pretty a child in his hand, about eight or
nine years old, as I ever saw, and after speaking his mind as freely as he
thought was prudent, finished with this unfatherly expression, "Well! give me
peace in my day." Not a man lives on the continent but fully believes that a
separation must some time or other finally take place, and a generous parent
should have said, "If there must be trouble, let it be in my day, that my child
may have peace;" and this single reflection, well applied, is sufficient to
awaken every man to duty. Not a place upon earth might be so happy as America.
Her situation is remote from all the wrangling world, and she has nothing to do
but to trade with them. A man can distinguish himself between temper and
principle, and I am as confident, as I am that God governs the world, that
America will never be happy till she gets clear of foreign dominion. Wars,
without ceasing, will break out till that period arrives, and the continent must
in the end be conqueror; for though the flame of liberty may sometimes cease to
shine, the coal can never expire.
AMERICA did not, nor does not
want force; but she wanted a proper application of that force. Wisdom is not the
purchase of a day, and it is no wonder that we should err at the first setting
off. From an excess of tenderness, we were unwilling to raise an army, and
trusted our cause to the temporary defence of a well-meaning militia. A summer's
experience has now taught us better; yet with those troops, while they were
collected, we were able to set bounds to the progress of the enemy, and, thank
God! they are again assembling. I always considered militia as the best troops
in the world for a sudden exertion, but they will not do for a long campaign.
Howe, it is probable, will make an attempt on this city [Philadelphia]; should
he fail on this side the Delaware, he is ruined. If he succeeds, our cause is
not ruined. He stakes all on his side against a part on ours; admitting he
succeeds, the consequence will be, that armies from both ends of the continent
will march to assist their suffering friends in the middle states; for he cannot
go everywhere, it is impossible. I consider Howe as the greatest enemy the
Tories have; he is bringing a war into their country, which, had it not been for
him and partly for themselves, they had been clear of. Should he now be
expelled, I wish with all the devotion of a Christian, that the names of Whig
and Tory may never more be mentioned; but should the Tories give him
encouragement to come, or assistance if he come, I as sincerely wish that our
next year's arms may expel them from the continent, and the Congress appropriate
their possessions to the relief of those who have suffered in well-doing. A
single successful battle next year will settle the whole. America could carry on
a two years' war by the confiscation of the property of disaffected persons, and
be made happy by their expulsion. Say not that this is revenge, call it rather
the soft resentment of a suffering people, who, having no object in view but the
good of all, have staked their own all upon a seemingly doubtful event. Yet it
is folly to argue against determined hardness; eloquence may strike the ear, and
the language of sorrow draw forth the tear of compassion, but nothing can reach
the heart that is steeled with prejudice.
QUITTING this class of men, I
turn with the warm ardor of a friend to those who have nobly stood, and are yet
determined to stand the matter out: I call not upon a few, but upon all: not on
this state or that state, but on every state: up and help us; lay your shoulders
to the wheel; better have too much force than too little, when so great an
object is at stake. Let it be told to the future world, that in the depth of
winter, when nothing but hope and virtue could survive, that the city and the
country, alarmed at one common danger, came forth to meet and to repulse it. Say
not that thousands are gone, turn out your tens of thousands; throw not the
burden of the day upon Providence, but "show your faith by your works," that God
may bless you. It matters not where you live, or what rank of life you hold, the
evil or the blessing will reach you all. The far and the near, the home counties
and the back, the rich and the poor, will suffer or rejoice alike. The heart
that feels not now is dead; the blood of his children will curse his cowardice,
who shrinks back at a time when a little might have saved the whole, and made
them happy. I love the man that can smile in trouble, that can gather strength
from distress, and grow brave by reflection. 'Tis the business of little minds
to shrink; but he whose heart is firm, and whose conscience approves his
conduct, will pursue his principles unto death. My own line of reasoning is to
myself as straight and clear as a ray of light. Not all the treasures of the
world, so far as I believe, could have induced me to support an offensive war,
for I think it murder; but if a thief breaks into my house, burns and destroys
my property, and kills or threatens to kill me, or those that are in it, and to
"bind me in all cases whatsoever" to his absolute will, am I to suffer it? What
signifies it to me, whether he who does it is a king or a common man; my
countryman or not my countryman; whether it be done by an individual villain, or
an army of them? If we reason to the root of things we shall find no difference;
neither can any just cause be assigned why we should punish in the one case and
pardon in the other. Let them call me rebel and welcome, I feel no concern from
it; but I should suffer the misery of devils, were I to make a whore of my soul
by swearing allegiance to one whose character is that of a sottish, stupid,
stubborn, worthless, brutish man. I conceive likewise a horrid idea in receiving
mercy from a being, who at the last day shall be shrieking to the rocks and
mountains to cover him, and fleeing with terror from the orphan, the widow, and
the slain of America.
THERE are cases which cannot be overdone by language, and this is one.
There are persons, too, who see not the full extent of the evil which threatens
them; they solace themselves with hopes that the enemy, if he succeed, will be
merciful. It is the madness of folly, to expect mercy from those who have
refused to do justice; and even mercy, where conquest is the object, is only a
trick of war; the cunning of the fox is as murderous as the violence of the
wolf, and we ought to guard equally against both. Howe's first object is, partly
by threats and partly by promises, to terrify or seduce the people to deliver up
their arms and receive mercy. The ministry recommended the same plan to Gage,
and this is what the tories call making their peace, "a peace which passeth all
understanding" indeed! A peace which would be the immediate forerunner of a
worse ruin than any we have yet thought of. Ye men of Pennsylvania, do reason
upon these things! Were the back counties to give up their arms, they would fall
an easy prey to the Indians, who are all armed: this perhaps is what some Tories
would not be sorry for. Were the home counties to deliver up their arms, they
would be exposed to the resentment of the back counties who would then have it
in their power to chastise their defection at pleasure. And were any one state
to give up its arms, that state must be garrisoned by all Howe's army of Britons
and Hessians to preserve it from the anger of the rest. Mutual fear is the
principal link in the chain of mutual love, and woe be to that state that breaks
the compact. Howe is mercifully inviting you to barbarous destruction, and men
must be either rogues or fools that will not see it. I dwell not upon the vapors
of imagination; I bring reason to your ears, and, in language as plain as A, B,
C, hold up truth to your eyes.
I thank God, that I fear not. I see no real cause for fear. I know our situation
well, and can see the way out of it. While our army was collected, Howe dared
not risk a battle; and it is no credit to him that he decamped from the White
Plains, and waited a mean opportunity to ravage the defenceless Jerseys; but it
is great credit to us, that, with a handful of men, we sustained an orderly
retreat for near an hundred miles, brought off our ammunition, all our field
pieces, the greatest part of our stores, and had four rivers to pass. None can
say that our retreat was precipitate, for we were near three weeks in performing
it, that the country might have time to come in. Twice we marched back to meet
the enemy, and remained out till dark. The sign of fear was not seen in our
camp, and had not some of the cowardly and disaffected inhabitants spread false
alarms through the country, the Jerseys had never been ravaged. Once more we are
again collected and collecting; our new army at both ends of the continent is
recruiting fast, and we shall be able to open the next campaign with sixty
thousand men, well armed and clothed. This is our situation, and who will may
know it. By perseverance and fortitude we have the prospect of a glorious issue;
by cowardice and submission, the sad choice of a variety of evils- a ravaged
country- a depopulated city- habitations without safety, and slavery without
hope- our homes turned into barracks and bawdy-houses for Hessians, and a future
race to provide for, whose fathers we shall doubt of. Look on this picture and
weep over it! and if there yet remains one thoughtless wretch who believes it
not, let him suffer it unlamented.
COMMON SENSE.
Philadelphia, December 19, 1776.
The Crisis Number II
by Thomas Paine
II.
TO LORD HOWE.
"What's in the name of lord, that I should fear
To bring my grievance to the public ear?"
CHURCHILL.
UNIVERSAL empire is the prerogative of a writer. His concerns are with
all mankind, and though he cannot command their obedience, he can assign them
their duty. The Republic of Letters is more ancient than monarchy, and of far
higher character in the world than the vassal court of Britain; he that rebels
against reason is a real rebel, but he that in defence of reason rebels against
tyranny has a better title to "Defender of the Faith," than George the Third.
As a military man your lordship may hold out the sword of war, and call it the
"ultima ratio regum": the last reason of kings; we in return can show you the
sword of justice, and call it "the best scourge of tyrants." The first of these
two may threaten, or even frighten for a while, and cast a sickly languor over
an insulted people, but reason will soon recover the debauch, and restore them
again to tranquil fortitude. Your lordship, I find, has now commenced author,
and published a proclamation; I have published a Crisis. As they stand, they are
the antipodes of each other; both cannot rise at once, and one of them must
descend; and so quick is the revolution of things, that your lordship's
performance, I see, has already fallen many degrees from its first place, and is
now just visible on the edge of the political horizon.
It is surprising to what a pitch of infatuation, blind folly
and obstinacy will carry mankind, and your lordship's drowsy proclamation is a
proof that it does not even quit them in their sleep. Perhaps you thought
America too was taking a nap, and therefore chose, like Satan to Eve, to whisper
the delusion softly, lest you should awaken her. This continent, sir, is too
extensive to sleep all at once, and too watchful, even in its slumbers, not to
startle at the unhallowed foot of an invader. You may issue your proclamations,
and welcome, for we have learned to "reverence ourselves," and scorn the
insulting ruffian that employs you. America, for your deceased brother's sake,
would gladly have shown you respect and it is a new aggravation to her feelings,
that Howe should be forgetful, and raise his sword against those, who at their
own charge raised a monument to his brother. But your master has commanded, and
you have not enough of nature left to refuse. Surely there must be something
strangely degenerating in the love of monarchy, that can so completely wear a
man down to an ingrate, and make him proud to lick the dust that kings have trod
upon. A few more years, should you survive them, will bestow on you the title of
"an old man": and in some hour of future reflection you may probably find the
fitness of Wolsey's despairing penitence- "had I served my God as faithful as I
have served my king, he would not thus have forsaken me in my old age."
The character you appear to us in, is truly ridiculous. Your
friends, the Tories, announced your coming, with high descriptions of your
unlimited powers; but your proclamation has given them the lie, by showing you
to be a commissioner without authority. Had your powers been ever so great they
were nothing to us, further than we pleased; because we had the same right which
other nations had, to do what we thought was best. "The UNITED STATES of
AMERICA," will sound as pompously in the world or in history, as "the
kingdom of Great Britain"; the character of General Washington will fill a page
with as much lustre as that of Lord Howe: and the Congress have as much right to
command the king and Parliament in London to desist from legislation, as they or
you have to command the Congress. Only suppose how laughable such an edict would
appear from us, and then, in that merry mood, do but turn the tables upon
yourself, and you will see how your proclamation is received here. Having thus
placed you in a proper position in which you may have a full view of your folly,
and learn to despise it, I hold up to you, for that purpose, the following
quotation from your own lunarian proclamation.- "And we (Lord Howe and General
Howe) do command (and in his majesty's name forsooth) all such persons as are
assembled together, under the name of general or provincial congresses,
committees, conventions or other associations, by whatever name or names known
and distinguished, to desist and cease from all such treasonable actings and
doings."
You introduce your proclamation by referring to your
declarations of the 14th of July and 19th of September. In the last of these you
sunk yourself below the character of a private gentleman. That I may not seem to
accuse you unjustly, I shall state the circumstance: by a verbal invitation of
yours, communicated to Congress by General Sullivan, then a prisoner on his
parole, you signified your desire of conferring with some members of that body
as private gentlemen. It was beneath the dignity of the American Congress to pay
any regard to a message that at best was but a genteel affront, and had too much
of the ministerial complexion of tampering with private persons; and which might
probably have been the case, had the gentlemen who were deputed on the business
possessed that kind of easy virtue which an English courtier is so truly
distinguished by. Your request, however, was complied with, for honest men are
naturally more tender of their civil than their political fame. The interview
ended as every sensible man thought it would; for your lordship knows, as well
as the writer of the Crisis, that it is impossible for the King of England to
promise the repeal, or even the revisal of any acts of parliament; wherefore, on
your part, you had nothing to say, more than to request, in the room of
demanding, the entire surrender of the continent; and then, if that was complied
with, to promise that the inhabitants should escape with their lives. This was
the upshot of the conference. You informed the conferees that you were two
months in soliciting these powers. We ask, what powers? for as commissioner you
have none. If you mean the power of pardoning, it is an oblique proof that your
master was determined to sacrifice all before him; and that you were two months
in dissuading him from his purpose. Another evidence of his savage obstinacy!
From your own account of the matter we may justly draw these two conclusions:
1st, That you serve a monster; and 2d, That never was a messenger sent on a more
foolish errand than yourself. This plain language may perhaps sound uncouthly to
an ear vitiated by courtly refinements, but words were made for use, and the
fault lies in deserving them, or the abuse in applying them unfairly.
Soon after your return to New York, you published a very illiberal and unmanly
handbill against the Congress; for it was certainly stepping out of the line of
common civility, first to screen your national pride by soliciting an interview
with them as private gentlemen, and in the conclusion to endeavor to deceive the
multitude by making a handbill attack on the whole body of the Congress; you got
them together under one name, and abused them under another. But the king you
serve, and the cause you support, afford you so few instances of acting the
gentleman, that out of pity to your situation the Congress pardoned the insult
by taking no notice of it.
You say in that handbill, "that they, the Congress, disavowed
every purpose for reconciliation not consonant with their extravagant and
inadmissible claim of independence." Why, God bless me! what have you to do with
our independence? We ask no leave of yours to set it up; we ask no money of
yours to support it; we can do better without your fleets and armies than with
them; you may soon have enough to do to protect yourselves without being
burdened with us. We are very willing to be at peace with you, to buy of you and
sell to you, and, like young beginners in the world, to work for our living;
therefore, why do you put yourselves out of cash, when we know you cannot spare
it, and we do not desire you to run into debt? I am willing, sir, that you
should see your folly in every point of view I can place it in, and for that
reason descend sometimes to tell you in jest what I wish you to see in earnest.
But to be more serious with you, why do you say, "their independence?" To set
you right, sir, we tell you, that the independency is ours, not theirs. The
Congress were authorized by every state on the continent to publish it to all
the world, and in so doing are not to be considered as the inventors, but only
as the heralds that proclaimed it, or the office from which the sense of the
people received a legal form; and it was as much as any or all their heads were
worth, to have treated with you on the subject of submission under any name
whatever. But we know the men in whom we have trusted; can England say the same
of her Parliament?
I come now more particularly to your proclamation of the 30th
of November last. Had you gained an entire conquest over all the armies of
America, and then put forth a proclamation, offering (what you call) mercy, your
conduct would have had some specious show of humanity; but to creep by surprise
into a province, and there endeavor to terrify and seduce the inhabitants from
their just allegiance to the rest by promises, which you neither meant nor were
able to fulfil, is both cruel and unmanly: cruel in its effects; because, unless
you can keep all the ground you have marched over, how are you, in the words of
your proclamation, to secure to your proselytes "the enjoyment of their
property?" What is to become either of your new adopted subjects, or your old
friends, the Tories, in Burlington, Bordentown, Trenton, Mount Holly, and many
other places, where you proudly lorded it for a few days, and then fled with the
precipitation of a pursued thief? What, I say, is to become of those wretches?
What is to become of those who went over to you from this city and State? What
more can you say to them than "shift for yourselves?" Or what more can they hope
for than to wander like vagabonds over the face of the earth? You may now tell
them to take their leave of America, and all that once was theirs. Recommend
them, for consolation, to your master's court; there perhaps they may make a
shift to live on the scraps of some dangling parasite, and choose companions
among thousands like themselves. A traitor is the foulest fiend on earth.
In a political sense we ought to thank you for thus bequeathing estates to the
continent; we shall soon, at this rate, be able to carry on a war without
expense, and grow rich by the ill policy of Lord Howe, and the generous
defection of the Tories. Had you set your foot into this city, you would have
bestowed estates upon us which we never thought of, by bringing forth traitors
we were unwilling to suspect. But these men, you'll say, "are his majesty's most
faithful subjects;" let that honor, then, be all their fortune, and let his
majesty take them to himself.
I am now thoroughly disgusted with them; they live in ungrateful ease, and bend
their whole minds to mischief. It seems as if God had given them over to a
spirit of infidelity, and that they are open to conviction in no other line but
that of punishment. It is time to have done with tarring, feathering, carting,
and taking securities for their future good behavior; every sensible man must
feel a conscious shame at seeing a poor fellow hawked for a show about the
streets, when it is known he is only the tool of some principal villain, biassed
into his offence by the force of false reasoning, or bribed thereto, through sad
necessity. We dishonor ourselves by attacking such trifling characters while
greater ones are suffered to escape; 'tis our duty to find them out, and their
proper punishment would be to exile them from the continent for ever. The circle
of them is not so great as some imagine; the influence of a few have tainted
many who are not naturally corrupt. A continual circulation of lies among those
who are not much in the way of hearing them contradicted, will in time pass for
truth; and the crime lies not in the believer but the inventor. I am not for
declaring war with every man that appears not so warm as myself: difference of
constitution, temper, habit of speaking, and many other things, will go a great
way in fixing the outward character of a man, yet simple honesty may remain at
bottom. Some men have naturally a military turn, and can brave hardships and the
risk of life with a cheerful face; others have not; no slavery appears to them
so great as the fatigue of arms, and no terror so powerful as that of personal
danger. What can we say? We cannot alter nature, neither ought we to punish the
son because the father begot him in a cowardly mood. However, I believe most men
have more courage than they know of, and that a little at first is enough to
begin with. I knew the time when I thought that the whistling of a cannon ball
would have frightened me almost to death; but I have since tried it, and find
that I can stand it with as little discomposure, and, I believe, with a much
easier conscience than your lordship. The same dread would return to me again
were I in your situation, for my solemn belief of your cause is, that it is
hellish and damnable, and, under that conviction, every thinking man's heart
must fail him.
From a concern that a good cause should be dishonored by the least disunion
among us, I said in my former paper, No. I. "That should the enemy now be
expelled, I wish, with all the sincerity of a Christian, that the names of Whig
and Tory might never more be mentioned;" but there is a knot of men among us of
such a venomous cast, that they will not admit even one's good wishes to act in
their favor. Instead of rejoicing that heaven had, as it were, providentially
preserved this city from plunder and destruction, by delivering so great a part
of the enemy into our hands with so little effusion of blood, they stubbornly
affected to disbelieve it till within an hour, nay, half an hour, of the
prisoners arriving; and the Quakers put forth a testimony, dated the 20th of
December, signed "John Pemberton," declaring their attachment to the British
government.* These men are continually harping on the great sin of our bearing
arms, but the king of Britain may lay waste the world in blood and famine, and
they, poor fallen souls, have nothing to say.
* I have ever been careful of charging offences upon
whole societies of men, but as the paper referred to is put forth by an
unknown set of men, who claim to themselves the right of representing the
whole: and while the whole Society of Quakers admit its validity by a silent
acknowledgment, it is impossible that any distinction can be made by the
public: and the more so, because the New York paper of the 30th of December,
printed by permission of our enemies, says that "the Quakers begin to speak
openly of their attachment to the British Constitution." We are certain that
we have many friends among them, and wish to know them.
In some future paper I intend to distinguish between the
different kind of persons who have been denominated Tories; for this I am clear
in, that all are not so who have been called so, nor all men Whigs who were once
thought so; and as I mean not to conceal the name of any true friend when there
shall be occasion to mention him, neither will I that of an enemy, who ought to
be known, let his rank, station or religion be what it may. Much pains have been
taken by some to set your lordship's private character in an amiable light, but
as it has chiefly been done by men who know nothing about you, and who are no
ways remarkable for their attachment to us, we have no just authority for
believing it. George the Third has imposed upon us by the same arts, but time,
at length, has done him justice, and the same fate may probably attend your
lordship. You avowed purpose here is to kill, conquer, plunder, pardon, and
enslave: and the ravages of your army through the Jerseys have been marked with
as much barbarism as if you had openly professed yourself the prince of
ruffians; not even the appearance of humanity has been preserved either on the
march or the retreat of your troops; no general order that I could ever learn,
has ever been issued to prevent or even forbid your troops from robbery,
wherever they came, and the only instance of justice, if it can be called such,
which has distinguished you for impartiality, is, that you treated and plundered
all alike; what could not be carried away has been destroyed, and mahogany
furniture has been deliberately laid on fire for fuel, rather than the men
should be fatigued with cutting wood.* There was a time when the Whigs confided
much in your supposed candor, and the Tories rested themselves in your favor;
the experiments have now been made, and failed; in every town, nay, every
cottage, in the Jerseys, where your arms have been, is a testimony against you.
How you may rest under this sacrifice of character I know not; but this I know,
that you sleep and rise with the daily curses of thousands upon you; perhaps the
misery which the Tories have suffered by your proffered mercy may give them some
claim to their country's pity, and be in the end the best favor you could show
them.
* As some people may doubt the truth of such wanton
destruction, I think it necessary to inform them that one of the people called
Quakers, who lives at Trenton, gave me this information at the house of Mr.
Michael Hutchinson, (one of the same profession,) who lives near Trenton ferry
on the Pennsylvania side, Mr. Hutchinson being present.
In a folio general-order book belonging to Col. Rhal's
battalion, taken at Trenton, and now in the possession of the council of safety
for this state, the following barbarous order is frequently repeated, "His
excellency the Commander-in-Chief orders, that all inhabitants who shall be
found with arms, not having an officer with them, shall be immediately taken and
hung up." How many you may thus have privately sacrificed, we know not, and the
account can only be settled in another world. Your treatment of prisoners, in
order to distress them to enlist in your infernal service, is not to be equalled
by any instance in Europe. Yet this is the humane Lord Howe and his brother,
whom the Tories and their three-quarter kindred, the Quakers, or some of them at
least, have been holding up for patterns of justice and mercy!
A bad cause will ever be supported by bad means and bad men; and whoever will be
at the pains of examining strictly into things, will find that one and the same
spirit of oppression and impiety, more or less, governs through your whole party
in both countries: not many days ago, I accidentally fell in company with a
person of this city noted for espousing your cause, and on my remarking to him,
"that it appeared clear to me, by the late providential turn of affairs, that
God Almighty was visibly on our side," he replied, "We care nothing for that you
may have Him, and welcome; if we have but enough of the devil on our side, we
shall do." However carelessly this might be spoken, matters not, 'tis still the
insensible principle that directs all your conduct and will at last most
assuredly deceive and ruin you.
If ever a nation was made and foolish, blind to its own interest and bent on its
own destruction, it is Britain. There are such things as national sins, and
though the punishment of individuals may be reserved to another world, national
punishment can only be inflicted in this world. Britain, as a nation, is, in my
inmost belief, the greatest and most ungrateful offender against God on the face
of the whole earth. Blessed with all the commerce she could wish for, and
furnished, by a vast extension of dominion, with the means of civilizing both
the eastern and western world, she has made no other use of both than proudly to
idolize her own "thunder," and rip up the bowels of whole countries for what she
could get. Like Alexander, she has made war her sport, and inflicted misery for
prodigality's sake. The blood of India is not yet repaid, nor the wretchedness
of Africa yet requited. Of late she has enlarged her list of national cruelties
by her butcherly destruction of the Caribbs of St. Vincent's, and returning an
answer by the sword to the meek prayer for "Peace, liberty and safety." These
are serious things, and whatever a foolish tyrant, a debauched court, a
trafficking legislature, or a blinded people may think, the national account
with heaven must some day or other be settled: all countries have sooner or
later been called to their reckoning; the proudest empires have sunk when the
balance was struck; and Britain, like an individual penitent, must undergo her
day of sorrow, and the sooner it happens to her the better. As I wish it over, I
wish it to come, but withal wish that it may be as light as possible.
Perhaps your lordship has no taste for serious things; by your connections in
England I should suppose not; therefore I shall drop this part of the subject,
and take it up in a line in which you will better understand me.
By what means, may I ask, do you expect to conquer America? If you could not
effect it in the summer, when our army was less than yours, nor in the winter,
when we had none, how are you to do it? In point of generalship you have been
outwitted, and in point of fortitude outdone; your advantages turn out to your
loss, and show us that it is in our power to ruin you by gifts: like a game of
drafts, we can move out of one square to let you come in, in order that we may
afterwards take two or three for one; and as we can always keep a double corner
for ourselves, we can always prevent a total defeat. You cannot be so insensible
as not to see that we have two to one the advantage of you, because we conquer
by a drawn game, and you lose by it. Burgoyne might have taught your lordship
this knowledge; he has been long a student in the doctrine of chances.
I have no other idea of conquering countries than by subduing the armies which
defend them: have you done this, or can you do it? If you have not, it would be
civil in you to let your proclamations alone for the present; otherwise, you
will ruin more Tories by your grace and favor, than you will Whigs by your arms.
Were you to obtain possession of this city, you would not know what to do with
it more than to plunder it. To hold it in the manner you hold New York, would be
an additional dead weight upon your hands; and if a general conquest is your
object, you had better be without the city than with it. When you have defeated
all our armies, the cities will fall into your hands of themselves; but to creep
into them in the manner you got into Princeton, Trenton, &c. is like robbing an
orchard in the night before the fruit be ripe, and running away in the morning.
Your experiment in the Jerseys is sufficient to teach you that you have
something more to do than barely to get into other people's houses; and your new
converts, to whom you promised all manner of protection, and seduced into new
guilt by pardoning them from their former virtues, must begin to have a very
contemptible opinion both of your power and your policy. Your authority in the
Jerseys is now reduced to the small circle which your army occupies, and your
proclamation is no where else seen unless it be to be laughed at. The mighty
subduers of the continent have retreated into a nutshell, and the proud
forgivers of our sins are fled from those they came to pardon; and all this at a
time when they were despatching vessel after vessel to England with the great
news of every day. In short, you have managed your Jersey expedition so very
dexterously, that the dead only are conquerors, because none will dispute the
ground with them.
In all the wars which you have formerly been concerned in you had only armies to
contend with; in this case you have both an army and a country to combat with.
In former wars, the countries followed the fate of their capitals; Canada fell
with Quebec, and Minorca with Port Mahon or St. Phillips; by subduing those, the
conquerors opened a way into, and became masters of the country: here it is
otherwise; if you get possession of a city here, you are obliged to shut
yourselves up in it, and can make no other use of it, than to spend your
country's money in. This is all the advantage you have drawn from New York; and
you would draw less from Philadelphia, because it requires more force to keep
it, and is much further from the sea. A pretty figure you and the Tories would
cut in this city, with a river full of ice, and a town full of fire; for the
immediate consequence of your getting here would be, that you would be
cannonaded out again, and the Tories be obliged to make good the damage; and
this sooner or later will be the fate of New York.
I wish to see the city saved, not so much from military as from natural motives.
'Tis the hiding place of women and children, and Lord Howe's proper business is
with our armies. When I put all the circumstances together which ought to be
taken, I laugh at your notion of conquering America. Because you lived in a
little country, where an army might run over the whole in a few days, and where
a single company of soldiers might put a multitude to the rout, you expected to
find it the same here. It is plain that you brought over with you all the narrow
notions you were bred up with, and imagined that a proclamation in the king's
name was to do great things; but Englishmen always travel for knowledge, and
your lordship, I hope, will return, if you return at all, much wiser than you
came.
We may be surprised by events we did not expect, and in that interval of
recollection you may gain some temporary advantage: such was the case a few
weeks ago, but we soon ripen again into reason, collect our strength, and while
you are preparing for a triumph, we come upon you with a defeat. Such it has
been, and such it would be were you to try it a hundred times over. Were you to
garrison the places you might march over, in order to secure their subjection,
(for remember you can do it by no other means,) your army would be like a stream
of water running to nothing. By the time you extended from New York to Virginia,
you would be reduced to a string of drops not capable of hanging together; while
we, by retreating from State to State, like a river turning back upon itself,
would acquire strength in the same proportion as you lost it, and in the end be
capable of overwhelming you. The country, in the meantime, would suffer, but it
is a day of suffering, and we ought to expect it. What we contend for is worthy
the affliction we may go through. If we get but bread to eat, and any kind of
raiment to put on, we ought not only to be contented, but thankful. More than
that we ought not to look for, and less than that heaven has not yet suffered us
to want. He that would sell his birthright for a little salt, is as worthless as
he who sold it for pottage without salt; and he that would part with it for a
gay coat, or a plain coat, ought for ever to be a slave in buff. What are salt,
sugar and finery, to the inestimable blessings of "Liberty and Safety!" Or what
are the inconveniences of a few months to the tributary bondage of ages? The
meanest peasant in America, blessed with these sentiments, is a happy man
compared with a New York Tory; he can eat his morsel without repining, and when
he has done, can sweeten it with a repast of wholesome air; he can take his
child by the hand and bless it, without feeling the conscious shame of
neglecting a parent's duty.
In publishing these remarks I have several objects in view.
On your part they are to expose the folly of your pretended authority as a
commissioner; the wickedness of your cause in general; and the impossibility of
your conquering us at any rate. On the part of the public, my intention is, to
show them their true and sold interest; to encourage them to their own good, to
remove the fears and falsities which bad men have spread, and weak men have
encouraged; and to excite in all men a love for union, and a cheerfulness for
duty.
I shall submit one more case to you respecting your conquest of this country,
and then proceed to new observations.
Suppose our armies in every part of this continent were immediately to disperse,
every man to his home, or where else he might be safe, and engage to reassemble
again on a certain future day; it is clear that you would then have no army to
contend with, yet you would be as much at a loss in that case as you are now;
you would be afraid to send your troops in parties over to the continent, either
to disarm or prevent us from assembling, lest they should not return; and while
you kept them together, having no arms of ours to dispute with, you could not
call it a conquest; you might furnish out a pompous page in the London Gazette
or a New York paper, but when we returned at the appointed time, you would have
the same work to do that you had at first.
It has been the folly of Britain to suppose herself more powerful than she
really is, and by that means has arrogated to herself a rank in the world she is
not entitled to: for more than this century past she has not been able to carry
on a war without foreign assistance. In Marlborough's campaigns, and from that
day to this, the number of German troops and officers assisting her have been
about equal with her own; ten thousand Hessians were sent to England last war to
protect her from a French invasion; and she would have cut but a poor figure in
her Canadian and West Indian expeditions, had not America been lavish both of
her money and men to help her along. The only instance in which she was engaged
singly, that I can recollect, was against the rebellion in Scotland, in the
years 1745 and 1746, and in that, out of three battles, she was twice beaten,
till by thus reducing their numbers, (as we shall yours) and taking a supply
ship that was coming to Scotland with clothes, arms and money, (as we have often
done,) she was at last enabled to defeat them. England was never famous by land;
her officers have generally been suspected of cowardice, have more of the air of
a dancing-master than a soldier, and by the samples which we have taken
prisoners, we give the preference to ourselves. Her strength, of late, has lain
in her extravagance; but as her finances and credit are now low, her sinews in
that line begin to fail fast. As a nation she is the poorest in Europe; for were
the whole kingdom, and all that is in it, to be put up for sale like the estate
of a bankrupt, it would not fetch as much as she owes; yet this thoughtless
wretch must go to war, and with the avowed design, too, of making us beasts of
burden, to support her in riot and debauchery, and to assist her afterwards in
distressing those nations who are now our best friends. This ingratitude may
suit a Tory, or the unchristian peevishness of a fallen Quaker, but none else.
'Tis the unhappy temper of the English to be pleased with any war, right or
wrong, be it but successful; but they soon grow discontented with ill fortune,
and it is an even chance that they are as clamorous for peace next summer, as
the king and his ministers were for war last winter. In this natural view of
things, your lordship stands in a very critical situation: your whole character
is now staked upon your laurels; if they wither, you wither with them; if they
flourish, you cannot live long to look at them; and at any rate, the black
account hereafter is not far off. What lately appeared to us misfortunes, were
only blessings in disguise; and the seeming advantages on your side have turned
out to our profit. Even our loss of this city, as far as we can see, might be a
principal gain to us: the more surface you spread over, the thinner you will be,
and the easier wiped away; and our consolation under that apparent disaster
would be, that the estates of the Tories would become securities for the
repairs. In short, there is no old ground we can fail upon, but some new
foundation rises again to support us. "We have put, sir, our hands to the
plough, and cursed be he that looketh back."
Your king, in his speech to parliament last spring, declared, "That he had no
doubt but the great force they had enabled him to send to America, would
effectually reduce the rebellious colonies." It has not, neither can it; but it
has done just enough to lay the foundation of its own next year's ruin. You are
sensible that you left England in a divided, distracted state of politics, and,
by the command you had here, you became a principal prop in the court party;
their fortunes rest on yours; by a single express you can fix their value with
the public, and the degree to which their spirits shall rise or fall; they are
in your hands as stock, and you have the secret of the alley with you. Thus
situated and connected, you become the unintentional mechanical instrument of
your own and their overthrow. The king and his ministers put conquest out of
doubt, and the credit of both depended on the proof. To support them in the
interim, it was necessary that you should make the most of every thing, and we
can tell by Hugh Gaine's New York paper what the complexion of the London
Gazette is. With such a list of victories the nation cannot expect you will ask
new supplies; and to confess your want of them would give the lie to your
triumphs, and impeach the king and his ministers of treasonable deception. If
you make the necessary demand at home, your party sinks; if you make it not, you
sink yourself; to ask it now is too late, and to ask it before was too soon, and
unless it arrive quickly will be of no use. In short, the part you have to act,
cannot be acted; and I am fully persuaded that all you have to trust to is, to
do the best you can with what force you have got, or little more. Though we have
greatly exceeded you in point of generalship and bravery of men, yet, as a
people, we have not entered into the full soul of enterprise; for I, who know
England and the disposition of the people well, am confident, that it is easier
for us to effect a revolution there, than you a conquest here; a few thousand
men landed in England with the declared design of deposing the present king,
bringing his ministers to trial, and setting up the Duke of Gloucester in his
stead, would assuredly carry their point, while you are grovelling here,
ignorant of the matter. As I send all my papers to England, this, like Common
Sense, will find its way there; and though it may put one party on their guard,
it will inform the other, and the nation in general, of our design to help them.
Thus far, sir, I have endeavored to give you a picture of present affairs: you
may draw from it what conclusions you please. I wish as well to the true
prosperity of England as you can, but I consider INDEPENDENCE as
America's natural right and interest, and never could see any real disservice it
would be to Britain. If an English merchant receives an order, and is paid for
it, it signifies nothing to him who governs the country. This is my creed of
politics. If I have any where expressed myself over-warmly, 'tis from a fixed,
immovable hatred I have, and ever had, to cruel men and cruel measures. I have
likewise an aversion to monarchy, as being too debasing to the dignity of man;
but I never troubled others with my notions till very lately, nor ever published
a syllable in England in my life. What I write is pure nature, and my pen and my
soul have ever gone together. My writings I have always given away, reserving
only the expense of printing and paper, and sometimes not even that. I never
courted either fame or interest, and my manner of life, to those who know it,
will justify what I say. My study is to be useful, and if your lordship loves
mankind as well as I do, you would, seeing you cannot conquer us, cast about and
lend your hand towards accomplishing a peace. Our independence with God's
blessing we will maintain against all the world; but as we wish to avoid evil
ourselves, we wish not to inflict it on others. I am never over-inquisitive into
the secrets of the cabinet, but I have some notion that, if you neglect the
present opportunity, it will not be in our power to make a separate peace with
you afterwards; for whatever treaties or alliances we form, we shall most
faithfully abide by; wherefore you may be deceived if you think you can make it
with us at any time. A lasting independent peace is my wish, end and aim; and to
accomplish that, I pray God the Americans may never be defeated, and I trust
while they have good officers, and are well commanded, and willing to be
commanded, that they NEVER WILL BE.
COMMON SENSE.
PHILADELPHIA, Jan. 13, 1777.
The Crisis Number III
by Thomas Paine
III.
IN THE progress of politics, as in the common occurrences of life, we are
not only apt to forget the ground we have travelled over, but frequently neglect
to gather up experience as we go. We expend, if I may so say, the knowledge of
every day on the circumstances that produce it, and journey on in search of new
matter and new refinements: but as it is pleasant and sometimes useful to look
back, even to the first periods of infancy, and trace the turns and windings
through which we have passed, so we may likewise derive many advantages by
halting a while in our political career, and taking a review of the wondrous
complicated labyrinth of little more than yesterday.
Truly may we say, that never did men grow old in so short a time! We have
crowded the business of an age into the compass of a few months, and have been
driven through such a rapid succession of things, that for the want of leisure
to think, we unavoidably wasted knowledge as we came, and have left nearly as
much behind us as we brought with us: but the road is yet rich with the
fragments, and, before we finally lose sight of them, will repay us for the
trouble of stopping to pick them up.
Were a man to be totally deprived of memory, he would be incapable of forming
any just opinion; every thing about him would seem a chaos: he would have even
his own history to ask from every one; and by not knowing how the world went in
his absence, he would be at a loss to know how it ought to go on when he
recovered, or rather, returned to it again. In like manner, though in a less
degree, a too great inattention to past occurrences retards and bewilders our
judgment in everything; while, on the contrary, by comparing what is past with
what is present, we frequently hit on the true character of both, and become
wise with very little trouble. It is a kind of counter-march, by which we get
into the rear of time, and mark the movements and meaning of things as we make
our return. There are certain circumstances, which, at the time of their
happening, are a kind of riddles, and as every riddle is to be followed by its
answer, so those kind of circumstances will be followed by their events, and
those events are always the true solution. A considerable space of time may
lapse between, and unless we continue our observations from the one to the
other, the harmony of them will pass away unnoticed: but the misfortune is, that
partly from the pressing necessity of some instant things, and partly from the
impatience of our own tempers, we are frequently in such a hurry to make out the
meaning of everything as fast as it happens, that we thereby never truly
understand it; and not only start new difficulties to ourselves by so doing,
but, as it were, embarrass Providence in her good designs.
I have been civil in stating this fault on a large scale, for, as it now stands,
it does not appear to be levelled against any particular set of men; but were it
to be refined a little further, it might afterwards be applied to the Tories
with a degree of striking propriety: those men have been remarkable for drawing
sudden conclusions from single facts. The least apparent mishap on our side, or
the least seeming advantage on the part of the enemy, have determined with them
the fate of a whole campaign. By this hasty judgment they have converted a
retreat into a defeat; mistook generalship for error; while every little
advantage purposely given the enemy, either to weaken their strength by dividing
it, embarrass their councils by multiplying their objects, or to secure a
greater post by the surrender of a less, has been instantly magnified into a
conquest. Thus, by quartering ill policy upon ill principles, they have
frequently promoted the cause they designed to injure, and injured that which
they intended to promote.
It is probable the campaign may open before this number comes from the press.
The enemy have long lain idle, and amused themselves with carrying on the war by
proclamations only. While they continue their delay our strength increases, and
were they to move to action now, it is a circumstantial proof that they have no
reinforcement coming; wherefore, in either case, the comparative advantage will
be ours. Like a wounded, disabled whale, they want only time and room to die in;
and though in the agony of their exit, it may be unsafe to live within the
flapping of their tail, yet every hour shortens their date, and lessens their
power of mischief. If any thing happens while this number is in the press, it
will afford me a subject for the last pages of it. At present I am tired of
waiting; and as neither the enemy, nor the state of politics have yet produced
any thing new, I am thereby left in the field of general matter, undirected by
any striking or particular object. This Crisis, therefore, will be made up
rather of variety than novelty, and consist more of things useful than things
wonderful.
The success of the cause, the union of the people, and the means of supporting
and securing both, are points which cannot be too much attended to. He who
doubts of the former is a desponding coward, and he who wilfully disturbs the
latter is a traitor. Their characters are easily fixed, and under these short
descriptions I leave them for the present.
One of the greatest degrees of sentimental union which America ever knew, was in
denying the right of the British parliament "to bind the colonies in all cases
whatsoever." The Declaration is, in its form, an almighty one, and is the
loftiest stretch of arbitrary power that ever one set of men or one country
claimed over another. Taxation was nothing more than the putting the declared
right into practice; and this failing, recourse was had to arms, as a means to
establish both the right and the practice, or to answer a worse purpose, which
will be mentioned in the course of this number. And in order to repay themselves
the expense of an army, and to profit by their own injustice, the colonies were,
by another law, declared to be in a state of actual rebellion, and of
consequence all property therein would fall to the conquerors.
The colonies, on their part, first, denied the right; secondly, they suspended
the use of taxable articles, and petitioned against the practice of taxation:
and these failing, they, thirdly, defended their property by force, as soon as
it was forcibly invaded, and, in answer to the declaration of rebellion and
non-protection, published their Declaration of Independence and right of
self-protection.
These, in a few words, are the different stages of the quarrel; and the parts
are so intimately and necessarily connected with each other as to admit of no
separation. A person, to use a trite phrase, must be a Whig or a Tory in a lump.
His feelings, as a man, may be wounded; his charity, as a Christian, may be
moved; but his political principles must go through all the cases on one side or
the other. He cannot be a Whig in this stage, and a Tory in that. If he says he
is against the united independence of the continent, he is to all intents and
purposes against her in all the rest; because this last comprehends the whole.
And he may just as well say, that Britain was right in declaring us rebels;
right in taxing us; and right in declaring her "right to bind the colonies in
all cases whatsoever." It signifies nothing what neutral ground, of his own
creating, he may skulk upon for shelter, for the quarrel in no stage of it hath
afforded any such ground; and either we or Britain are absolutely right or
absolutely wrong through the whole.
Britain, like a gamester nearly ruined, has now put all her losses into one bet,
and is playing a desperate game for the total. If she wins it, she wins from me
my life; she wins the continent as the forfeited property of rebels; the right
of taxing those that are left as reduced subjects; and the power of binding them
slaves: and the single die which determines this unparalleled event is, whether
we support our independence or she overturn it. This is coming to the point at
once. Here is the touchstone to try men by. He that is not a supporter of the
independent States of America in the same degree that his religious and
political principles would suffer him to support the government of any other
country, of which he called himself a subject, is, in the American sense of the
word, A TORY; and the instant that he endeavors to bring his toryism into
practice, he becomes A TRAITOR. The first can only be detected by a general
test, and the law hath already provided for the latter.
It is unnatural and impolitic to admit men who would root up our independence to
have any share in our legislation, either as electors or representatives;
because the support of our independence rests, in a great measure, on the vigor
and purity of our public bodies. Would Britain, even in time of peace, much less
in war, suffer an election to be carried by men who professed themselves to be
not her subjects, or allow such to sit in Parliament? Certainly not.
But there are a certain species of Tories with whom conscience or principle has
nothing to do, and who are so from avarice only. Some of the first fortunes on
the continent, on the part of the Whigs, are staked on the issue of our present
measures. And shall disaffection only be rewarded with security? Can any thing
be a greater inducement to a miserly man, than the hope of making his Mammon
safe? And though the scheme be fraught with every character of folly, yet, so
long as he supposes, that by doing nothing materially criminal against America
on one part, and by expressing his private disapprobation against independence,
as palliative with the enemy, on the other part, he stands in a safe line
between both; while, I say, this ground be suffered to remain, craft, and the
spirit of avarice, will point it out, and men will not be wanting to fill up
this most contemptible of all characters.
These men, ashamed to own the sordid cause from whence their disaffection
springs, add thereby meanness to meanness, by endeavoring to shelter themselves
under the mask of hypocrisy; that is, they had rather be thought to be Tories
from some kind of principle, than Tories by having no principle at all. But till
such time as they can show some real reason, natural, political, or
conscientious, on which their objections to independence are founded, we are not
obliged to give them credit for being Tories of the first stamp, but must set
them down as Tories of the last.
In the second number of the Crisis, I endeavored to show the impossibility of
the enemy's making any conquest of America, that nothing was wanting on our part
but patience and perseverance, and that, with these virtues, our success, as far
as human speculation could discern, seemed as certain as fate. But as there are
many among us, who, influenced by others, have regularly gone back from the
principles they once held, in proportion as we have gone forward; and as it is
the unfortunate lot of many a good man to live within the neighborhood of
disaffected ones; I shall, therefore, for the sake of confirming the one and
recovering the other, endeavor, in the space of a page or two, to go over some
of the leading principles in support of independence. It is a much pleasanter
task to prevent vice than to punish it, and, however our tempers may be
gratified by resentment, or our national expenses eased by forfeited estates,
harmony and friendship is, nevertheless, the happiest condition a country can be
blessed with.
The principal arguments in support of independence may be
comprehended under the four following heads.
1st, The natural right of the continent to independence.
2d, Her interest in being independent.
3d, The necessity,- and
4th, The moral advantages arising therefrom.
I. The natural right of the
continent to independence, is a point which never yet was called in question. It
will not even admit of a debate. To deny such a right, would be a kind of
atheism against nature: and the best answer to such an objection would be, "The
fool hath said in his heart there is no God."
II. The interest of the continent in being independent is a point as
clearly right as the former. America, by her own internal industry, and unknown
to all the powers of Europe, was, at the beginning of the dispute, arrived at a
pitch of greatness, trade and population, beyond which it was the interest of
Britain not to suffer her to pass, lest she should grow too powerful to be kept
subordinate. She began to view this country with the same uneasy malicious eye,
with which a covetous guardian would view his ward, whose estate he had been
enriching himself by for twenty years, and saw him just arriving at manhood. And
America owes no more to Britain for her present maturity, than the ward would to
the guardian for being twenty-one years of age. That America hath flourished at
the time she was under the government of Britain, is true; but there is every
natural reason to believe, that had she been an independent country from the
first settlement thereof, uncontrolled by any foreign power, free to make her
own laws, regulate and encourage her own commerce, she had by this time been of
much greater worth than now. The case is simply this: the first settlers in the
different colonies were left to shift for themselves, unnoticed and unsupported
by any European government; but as the tyranny and persecution of the old world
daily drove numbers to the new, and as, by the favor of heaven on their industry
and perseverance, they grew into importance, so, in a like degree, they became
an object of profit to the greedy eyes of Europe. It was impossible, in this
state of infancy, however thriving and promising, that they could resist the
power of any armed invader that should seek to bring them under his authority.
In this situation, Britain thought it worth her while to claim them, and the
continent received and acknowledged the claimer. It was, in reality, of no very
great importance who was her master, seeing, that from the force and ambition of
the different powers of Europe, she must, till she acquired strength enough to
assert her own right, acknowledge some one. As well, perhaps, Britain as
another; and it might have been as well to have been under the states of Holland
as any. The same hopes of engrossing and profiting by her trade, by not
oppressing it too much, would have operated alike with any master, and produced
to the colonies the same effects. The clamor of protection, likewise, was all a
farce; because, in order to make that protection necessary, she must first, by
her own quarrels, create us enemies. Hard terms indeed!
To know whether it be the interest of the continent to be independent, we need
only ask this easy, simple question: Is it the interest of a man to be a boy all
his life? The answer to one will be the answer to both. America hath been one
continued scene of legislative contention from the first king's representative
to the last; and this was unavoidably founded in the natural opposition of
interest between the old country and the new. A governor sent from England, or
receiving his authority therefrom, ought never to have been considered in any
other light than that of a genteel commissioned spy, whose private business was
information, and his public business a kind of civilized oppression. In the
first of these characters he was to watch the tempers, sentiments, and
disposition of the people, the growth of trade, and the increase of private
fortunes; and, in the latter, to suppress all such acts of the assemblies,
however beneficial to the people, which did not directly or indirectly throw
some increase of power or profit into the hands of those that sent him.
America, till now, could never be called a free country, because her legislation
depended on the will of a man three thousand miles distant, whose interest was
in opposition to ours, and who, by a single "no," could forbid what law he
pleased.
The freedom of trade, likewise, is, to a trading country, an article of such
importance, that the principal source of wealth depends upon it; and it is
impossible that any country can flourish, as it otherwise might do, whose
commerce is engrossed, cramped and fettered by the laws and mandates of another-
yet these evils, and more than I can here enumerate, the continent has suffered
by being under the government of England. By an independence we clear the whole
at once- put an end to the business of unanswered petitions and fruitless
remonstrances- exchange Britain for Europe- shake hands with the world- live at
peace with the world- and trade to any market where we can buy and sell.
III. The necessity, likewise, of being independent, even before it was
declared, became so evident and important, that the continent ran the risk of
being ruined every day that she delayed it. There was reason to believe that
Britain would endeavor to make an European matter of it, and, rather than lose
the whole, would dismember it, like Poland, and dispose of her several claims to
the highest bidder. Genoa, failing in her attempts to reduce Corsica, made a
sale of it to the French, and such trafficks have been common in the old world.
We had at that time no ambassador in any part of Europe, to counteract her
negotiations, and by that means she had the range of every foreign court
uncontradicted on our part. We even knew nothing of the treaty for the Hessians
till it was concluded, and the troops ready to embark. Had we been independent
before, we had probably prevented her obtaining them. We had no credit abroad,
because of our rebellious dependency. Our ships could claim no protection in
foreign ports, because we afforded them no justifiable reason for granting it to
us. The calling ourselves subjects, and at the same time fighting against the
power which we acknowledged, was a dangerous precedent to all Europe. If the
grievances justified the taking up arms, they justified our separation; if they
did not justify our separation, neither could they justify our taking up arms.
All Europe was interested in reducing us as rebels, and all Europe (or the
greatest part at least) is interested in supporting us as independent States. At
home our condition was still worse: our currency had no foundation, and the fall
of it would have ruined Whig and Tory alike. We had no other law than a kind of
moderated passion; no other civil power than an honest mob; and no other
protection than the temporary attachment of one man to another. Had independence
been delayed a few months longer, this continent would have been plunged into
irrecoverable confusion: some violent for it, some against it, till, in the
general cabal, the rich would have been ruined, and the poor destroyed. It is to
independence that every Tory owes the present safety which he lives in; for by
that, and that only, we emerged from a state of dangerous suspense, and became a
regular people.
The necessity, likewise, of being independent, had there been no rupture between
Britain and America, would, in a little time, have brought one on. The
increasing importance of commerce, the weight and perplexity of legislation, and
the entangled state of European politics, would daily have shown to the
continent the impossibility of continuing subordinate; for, after the coolest
reflections on the matter, this must be allowed, that Britain was too jealous of
America to govern it justly; too ignorant of it to govern it well; and too far
distant from it to govern it at all.
IV. But what weigh most with all men of serious reflection are, the moral
advantages arising from independence: war and desolation have become the trade
of the old world; and America neither could nor can be under the government of
Britain without becoming a sharer of her guilt, and a partner in all the dismal
commerce of death. The spirit of duelling, extended on a national scale, is a
proper character for European wars. They have seldom any other motive than
pride, or any other object than fame. The conquerors and the conquered are
generally ruined alike, and the chief difference at last is, that the one
marches home with his honors, and the other without them. 'Tis the natural
temper of the English to fight for a feather, if they suppose that feather to be
an affront; and America, without the right of asking why, must have abetted in
every quarrel, and abided by its fate. It is a shocking situation to live in,
that one country must be brought into all the wars of another, whether the
measure be right or wrong, or whether she will or not; yet this, in the fullest
extent, was, and ever would be, the unavoidable consequence of the connection.
Surely the Quakers forgot their own principles when, in their late Testimony,
they called this connection, with these military and miserable appendages
hanging to it- "the happy constitution."
Britain, for centuries past, has been nearly fifty years out of every hundred at
war with some power or other. It certainly ought to be a conscientious as well
political consideration with America, not to dip her hands in the bloody work of
Europe. Our situation affords us a retreat from their cabals, and the present
happy union of the states bids fair for extirpating the future use of arms from
one quarter of the world; yet such have been the irreligious politics of the
present leaders of the Quakers, that, for the sake of they scarce know what,
they would cut off every hope of such a blessing by tying this continent to
Britain, like Hector to the chariot wheel of Achilles, to be dragged through all
the miseries of endless European wars.
The connection, viewed from this ground, is distressing to every man who has the
feelings of humanity. By having Britain for our master, we became enemies to the
greatest part of Europe, and they to us: and the consequence was war inevitable.
By being our own masters, independent of any foreign one, we have Europe for our
friends, and the prospect of an endless peace among ourselves. Those who were
advocates for the British government over these colonies, were obliged to limit
both their arguments and their ideas to the period of an European peace only;
the moment Britain became plunged in war, every supposed convenience to us
vanished, and all we could hope for was not to be ruined. Could this be a
desirable condition for a young country to be in?
Had the French pursued their fortune immediately after the defeat of Braddock
last war, this city and province had then experienced the woful calamities of
being a British subject. A scene of the same kind might happen again; for
America, considered as a subject to the crown of Britain, would ever have been
the seat of war, and the bone of contention between the two powers.
On the whole, if the future expulsion of arms from one quarter of the world
would be a desirable object to a peaceable man; if the freedom of trade to every
part of it can engage the attention of a man of business; if the support or fall
of millions of currency can affect our interests; if the entire possession of
estates, by cutting off the lordly claims of Britain over the soil, deserves the
regard of landed property; and if the right of making our own laws, uncontrolled
by royal or ministerial spies or mandates, be worthy our care as freemen;- then
are all men interested in the support of independence; and may he that supports
it not, be driven from the blessing, and live unpitied beneath the servile
sufferings of scandalous subjection!
We have been amused with the tales of ancient wonders; we have read, and wept
over the histories of other nations: applauded, censured, or pitied, as their
cases affected us. The fortitude and patience of the sufferers- the justness of
their cause- the weight of their oppressions and oppressors- the object to be
saved or lost- with all the consequences of a defeat or a conquest- have, in the
hour of sympathy, bewitched our hearts, and chained it to their fate: but where
is the power that ever made war upon petitioners? Or where is the war on which a
world was staked till now?
We may not, perhaps, be wise enough to make all the advantages we ought of our
independence; but they are, nevertheless, marked and presented to us with every
character of great and good, and worthy the hand of him who sent them. I look
through the present trouble to a time of tranquillity, when we shall have it in
our power to set an example of peace to all the world. Were the Quakers really
impressed and influenced by the quiet principles they profess to hold, they
would, however they might disapprove the means, be the first of all men to
approve of independence, because, by separating ourselves from the cities of
Sodom and Gomorrah, it affords an opportunity never given to man before of
carrying their favourite principle of peace into general practice, by
establishing governments that shall hereafter exist without wars. O! ye fallen,
cringing, priest-and-Pemberton-ridden people! What more can we say of ye than
that a religious Quaker is a valuable character, and a political Quaker a real
Jesuit.
Having thus gone over some of the principal points in support of independence, I
must now request the reader to return back with me to the period when it first
began to be a public doctrine, and to examine the progress it has made among the
various classes of men. The area I mean to begin at, is the breaking out of
hostilities, April 19th, 1775. Until this event happened, the continent seemed
to view the dispute as a kind of law-suit for a matter of right, litigating
between the old country and the new; and she felt the same kind and degree of
horror, as if she had seen an oppressive plaintiff, at the head of a band of
ruffians, enter the court, while the cause was before it, and put the judge, the
jury, the defendant and his counsel, to the sword. Perhaps a more heart-felt
convulsion never reached a country with the same degree of power and rapidity
before, and never may again. Pity for the sufferers, mixed with indignation at
the violence, and heightened with apprehensions of undergoing the same fate,
made the affair of Lexington the affair of the continent. Every part of it felt
the shock, and all vibrated together. A general promotion of sentiment took
place: those who had drank deeply into Whiggish principles, that is, the right
and necessity not only of opposing, but wholly setting aside the power of the
crown as soon as it became practically dangerous (for in theory it was always
so), stepped into the first stage of independence; while another class of Whigs,
equally sound in principle, but not so sanguine in enterprise, attached
themselves the stronger to the cause, and fell close in with the rear of the
former; their partition was a mere point. Numbers of the moderate men, whose
chief fault, at that time, arose from entertaining a better opinion of Britain
than she deserved, convinced now of their mistake, gave her up, and publicly
declared themselves good Whigs. While the Tories, seeing it was no longer a
laughing matter, either sank into silent obscurity, or contented themselves with
coming forth and abusing General Gage: not a single advocate appeared to justify
the action of that day; it seemed to appear to every one with the same
magnitude, struck every one with the same force, and created in every one the
same abhorrence. From this period we may date the growth of independence.
If the many circumstances which happened at this memorable time, be taken in one
view, and compared with each other, they will justify a conclusion which seems
not to have been attended to, I mean a fixed design in the king and ministry of
driving America into arms, in order that they might be furnished with a pretence
for seizing the whole continent, as the immediate property of the crown. A noble
plunder for hungry courtiers!
It ought to be remembered, that the first petition from the Congress was at this
time unanswered on the part of the British king. That the motion, called Lord
North's motion, of the 20th of February, 1775, arrived in America the latter end
of March. This motion was to be laid, by the several governors then in being,
before, the assembly of each province; and the first assembly before which it
was laid, was the assembly of Pennsylvania, in May following. This being a just
state of the case, I then ask, why were hostilities commenced between the time
of passing the resolve in the House of Commons, of the 20th of February, and the
time of the assemblies meeting to deliberate upon it? Degrading and famous as
that motion was, there is nevertheless reason to believe that the king and his
adherents were afraid the colonies would agree to it, and lest they should, took
effectual care they should not, by provoking them with hostilities in the
interim. They had not the least doubt at that time of conquering America at one
blow; and what they expected to get by a conquest being infinitely greater than
any thing they could hope to get either by taxation or accommodation, they
seemed determined to prevent even the possibility of hearing each other, lest
America should disappoint their greedy hopes of the whole, by listening even to
their own terms. On the one hand they refused to hear the petition of the
continent, and on the other hand took effectual care the continent should not
hear them.
That the motion of the 20th February and the orders for commencing hostilities
were both concerted by the same person or persons, and not the latter by General
Gage, as was falsely imagined at first, is evident from an extract of a letter
of his to the administration, read among other papers in the House of Commons;
in which he informs his masters, "That though their idea of his disarming
certain counties was a right one, yet it required him to be master of the
country, in order to enable him to execute it." This was prior to the
commencement of hostilities, and consequently before the motion of the 20th
February could be deliberated on by the several assemblies.
Perhaps it may be asked, why was the motion passed, if there was at the same
time a plan to aggravate the Americans not to listen to it? Lord North assigned
one reason himself, which was a hope of dividing them. This was publicly
tempting them to reject it; that if, in case the injury of arms should fail in
provoking them sufficiently, the insult of such a declaration might fill it up.
But by passing the motion and getting it afterwards rejected in America, it
enabled them, in their wicked idea of politics, among other things, to hold up
the colonies to foreign powers, with every possible mark of disobedience and
rebellion. They had applied to those powers not to supply the continent with
arms, ammunition, etc., and it was necessary they should incense them against
us, by assigning on their own part some seeming reputable reason why. By
dividing, it had a tendency to weaken the States, and likewise to perplex the
adherents of America in England. But the principal scheme, and that which has
marked their character in every part of their conduct, was a design of
precipitating the colonies into a state which they might afterwards deem
rebellion, and, under that pretence, put an end to all future complaints,
petitions and remonstrances, by seizing the whole at once. They had ravaged one
part of the globe, till it could glut them no longer; their prodigality required
new plunder, and through the East India article tea they hoped to transfer their
rapine from that quarter of the world to this. Every designed quarrel had its
pretence; and the same barbarian avarice accompanied the plant to America, which
ruined the country that produced it.
That men never turn rogues without turning fools is a maxim, sooner or later,
universally true. The commencement of hostilities, being in the beginning of
April, was, of all times the worst chosen: the Congress were to meet the tenth
of May following, and the distress the continent felt at this unparalleled
outrage gave a stability to that body which no other circumstance could have
done. It suppressed too all inferior debates, and bound them together by a
necessitous affection, without giving them time to differ upon trifles. The
suffering likewise softened the whole body of the people into a degree of
pliability, which laid the principal foundation-stone of union, order, and
government; and which, at any other time, might only have fretted and then faded
away unnoticed and unimproved. But Providence, who best knows how to time her
misfortunes as well as her immediate favors, chose this to be the time, and who
dare dispute it?
It did not seem the disposition of the people, at this crisis, to heap petition
upon petition, while the former remained unanswered. The measure however was
carried in Congress, and a second petition was sent; of which I shall only
remark that it was submissive even to a dangerous fault, because the prayer of
it appealed solely to what it called the prerogative of the crown, while the
matter in dispute was confessedly constitutional. But even this petition,
flattering as it was, was still not so harmonious as the chink of cash, and
consequently not sufficiently grateful to the tyrant and his ministry. From
every circumstance it is evident, that it was the determination of the British
court to have nothing to do with America but to conquer her fully and
absolutely. They were certain of success, and the field of battle was the only
place of treaty. I am confident there are thousands and tens of thousands in
America who wonder now that they should ever have thought otherwise; but the sin
of that day was the sin of civility; yet it operated against our present good in
the same manner that a civil opinion of the devil would against our future
peace.
Independence was a doctrine scarce and rare, even towards the conclusion of the
year 1775; all our politics had been founded on the hope of expectation of
making the matter up- a hope, which, though general on the side of America, had
never entered the head or heart of the British court. Their hope was conquest
and confiscation. Good heavens! what volumes of thanks does America owe to
Britain? What infinite obligation to the tool that fills, with paradoxical
vacancy, the throne! Nothing but the sharpest essence of villany, compounded
with the strongest distillation of folly, could have produced a menstruum that
would have effected a separation. The Congress in 1774 administered an abortive
medicine to independence, by prohibiting the importation of goods, and the
succeeding Congress rendered the dose still more dangerous by continuing it. Had
independence been a settled system with America, (as Britain has advanced,) she
ought to have doubled her importation, and prohibited in some degree her
exportation. And this single circumstance is sufficient to acquit America before
any jury of nations, of having a continental plan of independence in view; a
charge which, had it been true, would have been honorable, but is so grossly
false, that either the amazing ignorance or the wilful dishonesty of the British
court is effectually proved by it.
The second petition, like the first, produced no answer; it was scarcely
acknowledged to have been received; the British court were too determined in
their villainy even to act it artfully, and in their rage for conquest neglected
the necessary subtleties for obtaining it. They might have divided, distracted
and played a thousand tricks with us, had they been as cunning as they were
cruel.
This last indignity gave a new spring to independence. Those who knew the savage
obstinacy of the king, and the jobbing, gambling spirit of the court, predicted
the fate of the petition, as soon as it was sent from America; for the men being
known, their measures were easily foreseen. As politicians we ought not so much
to ground our hopes on the reasonableness of the thing we ask, as on the
reasonableness of the person of whom we ask it: who would expect discretion from
a fool, candor from a tyrant, or justice from a villain?
As every prospect of accommodation seemed now to fail fast, men began to think
seriously on the matter; and their reason being thus stripped of the false hope
which had long encompassed it, became approachable by fair debate: yet still the
bulk of the people hesitated; they startled at the novelty of independence,
without once considering that our getting into arms at first was a more
extraordinary novelty, and that all other nations had gone through the work of
independence before us. They doubted likewise the ability of the continent to
support it, without reflecting that it required the same force to obtain an
accommodation by arms as an independence. If the one was acquirable, the other
was the same; because, to accomplish either, it was necessary that our strength
should be too great for Britain to subdue; and it was too unreasonable to
suppose, that with the power of being masters, we should submit to be servants.*
Their caution at this time was exceedingly misplaced; for if they were able to
defend their property and maintain their rights by arms, they, consequently,
were able to defend and support their independence; and in proportion as these
men saw the necessity and correctness of the measure, they honestly and openly
declared and adopted it, and the part that they had acted since has done them
honor and fully established their characters. Error in opinion has this peculiar
advantage with it, that the foremost point of the contrary ground may at any
time be reached by the sudden exertion of a thought; and it frequently happens
in sentimental differences, that some striking circumstance, or some forcible
reason quickly conceived, will effect in an instant what neither argument nor
example could produce in an age.
* In this state of political suspense the pamphlet Common
Sense made its appearance, and the success it met with does not become me to
mention. Dr. Franklin, Mr. Samuel and John Adams, were severally spoken of as
the supposed author. I had not, at that time, the pleasure either of
personally knowing or being known to the two last gentlemen. The favor of Dr.
Franklin's friendship I possessed in England, and my introduction to this part
of the world was through his patronage.I happened, when a school-boy, to pick
up a pleasing natural history of Virginia, and my inclination from that day of
seeing the western side of the Atlantic never left me. In October, 1775, Dr.
Franklin proposed giving me such materials as were in his hands, towards
completing a history of the present transactions, and seemed desirous of
having the first volume out the next Spring. I had then formed the outlines of
Common Sense, and finished nearly the first part; and as I supposed the
doctor's design in getting out a history was to open the new year with a new
system, I expected to surprise him with a production on that subject, much
earlier than he thought of; and without informing him what I was doing, got it
ready for the press as fast as I conveniently could, and sent him the first
pamphlet that was printed off.
I find it impossible in the small compass I am limited to, to
trace out the progress which independence has made on the minds of the different
classes of men, and the several reasons by which they were moved. With some, it
was a passionate abhorrence against the king of England and his ministry, as a
set of savages and brutes; and these men, governed by the agony of a wounded
mind, were for trusting every thing to hope and heaven, and bidding defiance at
once. With others, it was a growing conviction that the scheme of the British
court was to create, ferment and drive on a quarrel, for the sake of confiscated
plunder: and men of this class ripened into independence in proportion as the
evidence increased. While a third class conceived it was the true interest of
America, internally and externally, to be her own master, and gave their support
to independence, step by step, as they saw her abilities to maintain it enlarge.
With many, it was a compound of all these reasons; while those who were too
callous to be reached by either, remained, and still remain Tories.
The legal necessity of being independent, with several
collateral reasons, is pointed out in an elegant masterly manner, in a charge to
the grand jury for the district of Charleston, by the Hon. William Henry
Drayton, chief justice of South Carolina, [April 23, 1776]. This performance,
and the address of the convention of New York, are pieces, in my humble opinion,
of the first rank in America.
The principal causes why independence has not been so
universally supported as it ought, are fear and indolence, and the causes why it
has been opposed, are, avarice, down-right villany, and lust of personal power.
There is not such a being in America as a Tory from conscience; some secret
defect or other is interwoven in the character of all those, be they men or
women, who can look with patience on the brutality, luxury and debauchery of the
British court, and the violations of their army here. A woman's virtue must sit
very lightly on her who can even hint a favorable sentiment in their behalf. It
is remarkable that the whole race of prostitutes in New York were tories; and
the schemes for supporting the Tory cause in this city, for which several are
now in jail, and one hanged, were concerted and carried on in common
bawdy-houses, assisted by those who kept them.
The connection between vice and meanness is a fit subject for
satire, but when the satire is a fact, it cuts with the irresistible power of a
diamond. If a Quaker, in defence of his just rights, his property, and the
chastity of his house, takes up a musket, he is expelled the meeting; but the
present king of England, who seduced and took into keeping a sister of their
society, is reverenced and supported by repeated Testimonies, while, the
friendly noodle from whom she was taken (and who is now in this city) continues
a drudge in the service of his rival, as if proud of being cuckolded by a
creature called a king.
Our support and success depend on such a variety of men and
circumstances, that every one who does but wish well, is of some use: there are
men who have a strange aversion to arms, yet have hearts to risk every shilling
in the cause, or in support of those who have better talents for defending it.
Nature, in the arrangement of mankind, has fitted some for every service in
life: were all soldiers, all would starve and go naked, and were none soldiers,
all would be slaves. As disaffection to independence is the badge of a Tory, so
affection to it is the mark of a Whig; and the different services of the Whigs,
down from those who nobly contribute every thing, to those who have nothing to
render but their wishes, tend all to the same center, though with different
degrees of merit and ability. The larger we make the circle, the more we shall
harmonize, and the stronger we shall be. All we want to shut out is
disaffection, and, that excluded, we must accept from each other such duties as
we are best fitted to bestow. A narrow system of politics, like a narrow system
of religion, is calculated only to sour the temper, and be at variance with
mankind.
All we want to know in America is simply this, who is for
independence, and who is not? Those who are for it, will support it, and the
remainder will undoubtedly see the reasonableness of paying the charges; while
those who oppose or seek to betray it, must expect the more rigid fate of the
jail and the gibbet. There is a bastard kind of generosity, which being extended
to all men, is as fatal to society, on one hand, as the want of true generosity
is on the other. A lax manner of administering justice, falsely termed
moderation, has a tendency both to dispirit public virtue, and promote the
growth of public evils. Had the late committee of safety taken cognizance of the
last Testimony of the Quakers and proceeded against such delinquents as were
concerned therein, they had, probably, prevented the treasonable plans which
have been concerted since. When one villain is suffered to escape, it encourages
another to proceed, either from a hope of escaping likewise, or an apprehension
that we dare not punish. It has been a matter of general surprise, that no
notice was taken of the incendiary publication of the Quakers, of the 20th of
November last; a publication evidently intended to promote sedition and treason,
and encourage the enemy, who were then within a day's march of this city, to
proceed on and possess it. I here present the reader with a memorial which was
laid before the board of safety a few days after the Testimony appeared. Not a
member of that board, that I conversed with, but expressed the highest
detestation of the perverted principles and conduct of the Quaker junto, and a
wish that the board would take the matter up; notwithstanding which, it was
suffered to pass away unnoticed, to the encouragement of new acts of treason,
the general danger of the cause, and the disgrace of the state.
To the honorable the Council of Safety of the State of
Pennsylvania.
At a meeting of a reputable number of the inhabitants of the
city of Philadelphia, impressed with a proper sense of the justice of the cause
which this continent is engaged in, and animated with a generous fervor for
supporting the same, it was resolved, that the following be laid before the
board of safety:
"We profess liberality of sentiment to all men; with this
distinction only, that those who do not deserve it would become wise and seek
to deserve it. We hold the pure doctrines of universal liberty of conscience,
and conceive it our duty to endeavor to secure that sacred right to others, as
well as to defend it for ourselves; for we undertake not to judge of the
religious rectitude of tenets, but leave the whole matter to Him who made us.
"We persecute no man, neither will we abet in the
persecution of any man for religion's sake; our common relation to others
being that of fellow-citizens and fellow-subjects of one single community; and
in this line of connection we hold out the right hand of fellowship to all
men. But we should conceive ourselves to be unworthy members of the free and
independent States of America, were we unconcernedly to see or to suffer any
treasonable wound, public or private, directly or indirectly, to be given
against the peace and safety of the same. We inquire not into the rank of the
offenders, nor into their religious persuasion; we have no business with
either, our part being only to find them out and exhibit them to justice.
"A printed paper, dated the 20th of November, and signed
'John Pemberton,' whom we suppose to be an inhabitant of this city, has lately
been dispersed abroad, a copy of which accompanies this. Had the framers and
publishers of that paper conceived it their duty to exhort the youth and
others of their society, to a patient submission under the present trying
visitations, and humbly to wait the event of heaven towards them, they had
therein shown a Christian temper, and we had been silent; but the anger and
political virulence with which their instructions are given, and the abuse
with which they stigmatize all ranks of men not thinking like themselves,
leave no doubt on our minds from what spirit their publication proceeded: and
it is disgraceful to the pure cause of truth, that men can dally with words of
the most sacred import, and play them off as mechanically as if religion
consisted only in contrivance. We know of no instance in which the Quakers
have been compelled to bear arms, or to do any thing which might strain their
conscience; wherefore their advice, 'to withstand and refuse to submit to the
arbitrary instructions and ordinances of men,' appear to us a false alarm, and
could only be treasonably calculated to gain favor with our enemies, when they
are seemingly on the brink of invading this State, or, what is still worse, to
weaken the hands of our defence, that their entrance into this city might be
made practicable and easy.
"We disclaim all tumult and disorder in the punishment of
offenders; and wish to be governed, not by temper but by reason, in the manner
of treating them. We are sensible that our cause has suffered by the two
following errors: first, by ill-judged lenity to traitorous persons in some
cases; and, secondly, by only a passionate treatment of them in others. For
the future we disown both, and wish to be steady in our proceedings, and
serious in our punishments.
"Every State in America has, by the repeated voice of its
inhabitants, directed and authorized the Continental Congress to publish a
formal Declaration of Independence of, and separation from, the oppressive
king and Parliament of Great Britain; and we look on every man as an enemy,
who does not in some line or other, give his assistance towards supporting the
same; at the same time we consider the offence to be heightened to a degree of
unpardonable guilt, when such persons, under the show of religion, endeavor,
either by writing, speaking, or otherwise, to subvert, overturn, or bring
reproach upon the independence of this continent as declared by Congress.
"The publishers of the paper signed 'John Pemberton,' have
called in a loud manner to their friends and connections, 'to withstand or
refuse' obedience to whatever 'instructions or ordinances' may be published,
not warranted by (what they call) 'that happy Constitution under which they
and others long enjoyed tranquillity and peace.' If this be not treason, we
know not what may properly be called by that name.
"To us it is a matter of surprise and astonishment, that men
with the word 'peace, peace,' continually on their lips, should be so fond of
living under and supporting a government, and at the same time calling it
'happy,' which is never better pleased than when a war- that has filled India
with carnage and famine, Africa with slavery, and tampered with Indians and
negroes to cut the throats of the freemen of America. We conceive it a
disgrace to this State, to harbor or wink at such palpable hypocrisy. But as
we seek not to hurt the hair of any man's head, when we can make ourselves
safe without, we wish such persons to restore peace to themselves and us, by
removing themselves to some part of the king of Great Britain's dominions, as
by that means they may live unmolested by us and we by them; for our fixed
opinion is, that those who do not deserve a place among us, ought not to have
one.
"We conclude with requesting the Council of Safety to take
into consideration the paper signed 'John Pemberton,' and if it shall appear
to them to be of a dangerous tendency, or of a treasonable nature, that they
would commit the signer, together with such other persons as they can discover
were concerned therein, into custody, until such time as some mode of trial
shall ascertain the full degree of their guilt and punishment; in the doing of
which, we wish their judges, whoever they may be, to disregard the man, his
connections, interest, riches, poverty, or principles of religion, and to
attend to the nature of his offence only."
The most cavilling sectarian cannot accuse the foregoing with
containing the least ingredient of persecution. The free spirit on which the
American cause is founded, disdains to mix with such an impurity, and leaves it
as rubbish fit only for narrow and suspicious minds to grovel in. Suspicion and
persecution are weeds of the same dunghill, and flourish together. Had the
Quakers minded their religion and their business, they might have lived through
this dispute in enviable ease, and none would have molested them. The common
phrase with these people is, 'Our principles are peace.' To which may be
replied, and your practices are the reverse; for never did the conduct of men
oppose their own doctrine more notoriously than the present race of the Quakers.
They have artfully changed themselves into a different sort of people to what
they used to be, and yet have the address to persuade each other that they are
not altered; like antiquated virgins, they see not the havoc deformity has made
upon them, but pleasantly mistaking wrinkles for dimples, conceive themselves
yet lovely and wonder at the stupid world for not admiring them.
Did no injury arise to the public by this apostacy of the
Quakers from themselves, the public would have nothing to do with it; but as
both the design and consequences are pointed against a cause in which the whole
community are interested, it is therefore no longer a subject confined to the
cognizance of the meeting only, but comes, as a matter of criminality, before
the authority either of the particular State in which it is acted, or of the
continent against which it operates. Every attempt, now, to support the
authority of the king and Parliament of Great Britain over America, is treason
against every State; therefore it is impossible that any one can pardon or
screen from punishment an offender against all.
But to proceed: while the infatuated Tories of this and other
States were last spring talking of commissioners, accommodation, making the
matter up, and the Lord knows what stuff and nonsense, their good king and
ministry were glutting themselves with the revenge of reducing America to
unconditional submission, and solacing each other with the certainty of
conquering it in one campaign. The following quotations are from the
parliamentary register of the debate's of the House of Lords, March 5th, 1776:
"The Americans," says Lord Talbot,* "have been obstinate,
undutiful, and ungovernable from the very beginning, from their first early and
infant settlements; and I am every day more and more convinced that this people
never will be brought back to their duty, and the subordinate relation they
stand in to this country, till reduced to unconditional, effectual submission;
no concession on our part, no lenity, no endurance, will have any other effect
but that of increasing their insolence."
* Steward of the king's household.
"The struggle," says Lord Townsend,* "is now a struggle for
power; the die is cast, and the only point which now remains to be determined
is, in what manner the war can be most effectually prosecuted and speedily
finished, in order to procure that unconditional submission, which has been so
ably stated by the noble Earl with the white staff" (meaning Lord Talbot;) "and
I have no reason to doubt that the measures now pursuing will put an end to the
war in the course of a single campaign. Should it linger longer, we shall then
have reason to expect that some foreign power will interfere, and take advantage
of our domestic troubles and civil distractions."
* Formerly General Townsend, at Quebec, and late
lord-lieutenant of Ireland.
Lord Littleton. "My sentiments are pretty well known. I shall
only observe now that lenient measures have had no other effect than to produce
insult after insult; that the more we conceded, the higher America rose in her
demands, and the more insolent she has grown. It is for this reason that I am
now for the most effective and decisive measures; and am of opinion that no
alternative is left us, but to relinquish America for ever, or finally determine
to compel her to acknowledge the legislative authority of this country; and it
is the principle of an unconditional submission I would be for maintaining."
Can words be more expressive than these? Surely the Tories
will believe the Tory lords! The truth is, they do believe them and know as
fully as any Whig on the continent knows, that the king and ministry never had
the least design of an accommodation with America, but an absolute,
unconditional conquest. And the part which the Tories were to act, was, by
downright lying, to endeavor to put the continent off its guard, and to divide
and sow discontent in the minds of such Whigs as they might gain an influence
over. In short, to keep up a distraction here, that the force sent from England
might be able to conquer in "one campaign." They and the ministry were, by a
different game, playing into each other's hands. The cry of the Tories in
England was, "No reconciliation, no accommodation," in order to obtain the
greater military force; while those in America were crying nothing but
"reconciliation and accommodation," that the force sent might conquer with the
less resistance.
But this "single campaign" is over, and America not conquered.
The whole work is yet to do, and the force much less to do it with. Their
condition is both despicable and deplorable: out of cash- out of heart, and out
of hope. A country furnished with arms and ammunition as America now is, with
three millions of inhabitants, and three thousand miles distant from the nearest
enemy that can approach her, is able to look and laugh them in the face.
Howe appears to have two objects in view, either to go up the
North River, or come to Philadelphia.
By going up the North River, he secures a retreat for his army
through Canada, but the ships must return if they return at all, the same way
they went; as our army would be in the rear, the safety of their passage down is
a doubtful matter. By such a motion he shuts himself from all supplies from
Europe, but through Canada, and exposes his army and navy to the danger of
perishing. The idea of his cutting off the communication between the eastern and
southern states, by means of the North River, is merely visionary. He cannot do
it by his shipping; because no ship can lay long at anchor in any river within
reach of the shore; a single gun would drive a first rate from such a station.
This was fully proved last October at Forts Washington and Lee, where one gun
only, on each side of the river, obliged two frigates to cut and be towed off in
an hour's time. Neither can he cut it off by his army; because the several posts
they must occupy would divide them almost to nothing, and expose them to be
picked up by ours like pebbles on a river's bank; but admitting that he could,
where is the injury? Because, while his whole force is cantoned out, as sentries
over the water, they will be very innocently employed, and the moment they march
into the country the communication opens.
The most probable object is Philadelphia, and the reasons are
many. Howe's business is to conquer it, and in proportion as he finds himself
unable to the task, he will employ his strength to distress women and weak
minds, in order to accomplish through their fears what he cannot accomplish by
his own force. His coming or attempting to come to Philadelphia is a
circumstance that proves his weakness: for no general that felt himself able to
take the field and attack his antagonist would think of bringing his army into a
city in the summer time; and this mere shifting the scene from place to place,
without effecting any thing, has feebleness and cowardice on the face of it, and
holds him up in a contemptible light to all who can reason justly and firmly. By
several informations from New York, it appears that their army in general, both
officers and men, have given up the expectation of conquering America; their eye
now is fixed upon the spoil. They suppose Philadelphia to be rich with stores,
and as they think to get more by robbing a town than by attacking an army, their
movement towards this city is probable. We are not now contending against an
army of soldiers, but against a band of thieves, who had rather plunder than
fight, and have no other hope of conquest than by cruelty.
They expect to get a mighty booty, and strike another general
panic, by making a sudden movement and getting possession of this city; but
unless they can march out as well as in, or get the entire command of the river,
to remove off their plunder, they may probably be stopped with the stolen goods
upon them. They have never yet succeeded wherever they have been opposed, but at
Fort Washington. At Charleston their defeat was effectual. At Ticonderoga they
ran away. In every skirmish at Kingsbridge and the White Plains they were
obliged to retreat, and the instant that our arms were turned upon them in the
Jerseys, they turned likewise, and those that turned not were taken.
The necessity of always fitting our internal police to the
circumstances of the times we live in, is something so strikingly obvious, that
no sufficient objection can be made against it. The safety of all societies
depends upon it; and where this point is not attended to, the consequences will
either be a general languor or a tumult. The encouragement and protection of the
good subjects of any state, and the suppression and punishment of bad ones, are
the principal objects for which all authority is instituted, and the line in
which it ought to operate. We have in this city a strange variety of men and
characters, and the circumstances of the times require that they should be
publicly known; it is not the number of Tories that hurt us, so much as the not
finding out who they are; men must now take one side or the other, and abide by
the consequences: the Quakers, trusting to their short-sighted sagacity, have,
most unluckily for them, made their declaration in their last Testimony, and we
ought now to take them at their word. They have involuntarily read themselves
out of the continental meeting, and cannot hope to be restored to it again but
by payment and penitence. Men whose political principles are founded on avarice,
are beyond the reach of reason, and the only cure of Toryism of this cast is to
tax it. A substantial good drawn from a real evil, is of the same benefit to
society, as if drawn from a virtue; and where men have not public spirit to
render themselves serviceable, it ought to be the study of government to draw
the best use possible from their vices. When the governing passion of any man,
or set of men, is once known, the method of managing them is easy; for even
misers, whom no public virtue can impress, would become generous, could a heavy
tax be laid upon covetousness.
The Tories have endeavored to insure their property with the
enemy, by forfeiting their reputation with us; from which may be justly
inferred, that their governing passion is avarice. Make them as much afraid of
losing on one side as on the other, and you stagger their Toryism; make them
more so, and you reclaim them; for their principle is to worship the power which
they are most afraid of.
This method of considering men and things together, opens into
a large field for speculation, and affords me an opportunity of offering some
observations on the state of our currency, so as to make the support of it go
hand in hand with the suppression of disaffection and the encouragement of
public spirit.
The thing which first presents itself in inspecting the state
of the currency, is, that we have too much of it, and that there is a necessity
of reducing the quantity, in order to increase the value. Men are daily growing
poor by the very means that they take to get rich; for in the same proportion
that the prices of all goods on hand are raised, the value of all money laid by
is reduced. A simple case will make this clear; let a man have 100 L. in cash,
and as many goods on hand as will to-day sell for 20 L.; but not content with
the present market price, he raises them to 40 L. and by so doing obliges
others, in their own defence, to raise cent. per cent. likewise; in this case it
is evident that his hundred pounds laid by, is reduced fifty pounds in value;
whereas, had the market lowered cent. per cent., his goods would have sold but
for ten, but his hundred pounds would have risen in value to two hundred;
because it would then purchase as many goods again, or support his family as
long again as before. And, strange as it may seem, he is one hundred and fifty
pounds the poorer for raising his goods, to what he would have been had he
lowered them; because the forty pounds which his goods sold for, is, by the
general raise of the market cent. per cent., rendered of no more value than the
ten pounds would be had the market fallen in the same proportion; and,
consequently, the whole difference of gain or loss is on the difference in value
of the hundred pounds laid by, viz. from fifty to two hundred. This rage for
raising goods is for several reasons much more the fault of the Tories than the
Whigs; and yet the Tories (to their shame and confusion ought they to be told of
it) are by far the most noisy and discontented. The greatest part of the Whigs,
by being now either in the army or employed in some public service, are buyers
only and not sellers, and as this evil has its origin in trade, it cannot be
charged on those who are out of it.
But the grievance has now become too general to be remedied by
partial methods, and the only effectual cure is to reduce the quantity of money:
with half the quantity we should be richer than we are now, because the value of
it would be doubled, and consequently our attachment to it increased; for it is
not the number of dollars that a man has, but how far they will go, that makes
him either rich or poor. These two points being admitted, viz. that the quantity
of money is too great, and that the prices of goods can only be effectually
reduced by, reducing the quantity of the money, the next point to be considered
is, the method how to reduce it.
The circumstances of the times, as before observed, require
that the public characters of all men should now be fully understood, and the
only general method of ascertaining it is by an oath or affirmation, renouncing
all allegiance to the king of Great Britain, and to support the independence of
the United States, as declared by Congress. Let, at the same time, a tax of ten,
fifteen, or twenty per cent. per annum, to be collected quarterly, be levied on
all property. These alternatives, by being perfectly voluntary, will take in all
sorts of people. Here is the test; here is the tax. He who takes the former,
conscientiously proves his affection to the cause, and binds himself to pay his
quota by the best services in his power, and is thereby justly exempt from the
latter; and those who choose the latter, pay their quota in money, to be excused
from the former, or rather, it is the price paid to us for their supposed,
though mistaken, insurance with the enemy.
But this is only a part of the advantage which would arise by
knowing the different characters of men. The Whigs stake everything on the issue
of their arms, while the Tories, by their disaffection, are sapping and
undermining their strength; and, of consequence, the property of the Whigs is
the more exposed thereby; and whatever injury their estates may sustain by the
movements of the enemy, must either be borne by themselves, who have done
everything which has yet been done, or by the Tories, who have not only done
nothing, but have, by their disaffection, invited the enemy on.
In the present crisis we ought to know, square by square and
house by house, who are in real allegiance with the United Independent States,
and who are not. Let but the line be made clear and distinct, and all men will
then know what they are to trust to. It would not only be good policy but strict
justice, to raise fifty or one hundred thousand pounds, or more, if it is
necessary, out of the estates and property of the king of England's votaries,
resident in Philadelphia, to be distributed, as a reward to those inhabitants of
the city and State, who should turn out and repulse the enemy, should they
attempt to march this way; and likewise, to bind the property of all such
persons to make good the damages which that of the Whigs might sustain. In the
undistinguishable mode of conducting a war, we frequently make reprisals at sea,
on the vessels of persons in England, who are friends to our cause compared with
the resident Tories among us.
In every former publication of mine, from Common Sense down to
the last Crisis, I have generally gone on the charitable supposition, that the
Tories were rather a mistaken than a criminal people, and have applied argument
after argument, with all the candor and temper which I was capable of, in order
to set every part of the case clearly and fairly before them, and if possible to
reclaim them from ruin to reason. I have done my duty by them and have now done
with that doctrine, taking it for granted, that those who yet hold their
disaffection are either a set of avaricious miscreants, who would sacrifice the
continent to save themselves, or a banditti of hungry traitors, who are hoping
for a division of the spoil. To which may be added, a list of crown or
proprietary dependants, who, rather than go without a portion of power, would be
content to share it with the devil. Of such men there is no hope; and their
obedience will only be according to the danger set before them, and the power
that is exercised over them.
A time will shortly arrive, in which, by ascertaining the
characters of persons now, we shall be guarded against their mischiefs then; for
in proportion as the enemy despair of conquest, they will be trying the arts of
seduction and the force of fear by all the mischiefs which they can inflict. But
in war we may be certain of these two things, viz. that cruelty in an enemy, and
motions made with more than usual parade, are always signs of weakness. He that
can conquer, finds his mind too free and pleasant to be brutish; and he that
intends to conquer, never makes too much show of his strength.
We now know the enemy we have to do with. While drunk with the
certainty of victory, they disdained to be civil; and in proportion as
disappointment makes them sober, and their apprehensions of an European war
alarm them, they will become cringing and artful; honest they cannot be. But our
answer to them, in either condition they may be in, is short and full- "As free
and independent States we are willing to make peace with you to-morrow, but we
neither can hear nor reply in any other character."
If Britain cannot conquer us, it proves that she is neither
able to govern nor protect us, and our particular situation now is such, that
any connection with her would be unwisely exchanging a half-defeated enemy for
two powerful ones. Europe, by every appearance, is now on the eve, nay, on the
morning twilight of a war, and any alliance with George the Third brings France
and Spain upon our backs; a separation from him attaches them to our side;
therefore, the only road to peace, honor and commerce is Independence.
Written this fourth year of the UNION, which God
preserve.
COMMON SENSE.
PHILADELPHIA, April 19, 1777.
The Crisis Number IV
by Thomas Paine
IV.
THOSE who expect to reap the blessings of freedom, must, like men,
undergo the fatigues of supporting it. The event of yesterday was one of those
kind of alarms which is just sufficient to rouse us to duty, without being of
consequence enough to depress our fortitude. It is not a field of a few acres of
ground, but a cause, that we are defending, and whether we defeat the enemy in
one battle, or by degrees, the consequences will be the same.
Look back at the events of last winter and the present year, there you will find
that the enemy's successes always contributed to reduce them. What they have
gained in ground, they paid so dearly for in numbers, that their victories have
in the end amounted to defeats. We have always been masters at the last push,
and always shall be while we do our duty. Howe has been once on the banks of the
Delaware, and from thence driven back with loss and disgrace: and why not be
again driven from the Schuylkill? His condition and ours are very different. He
has everybody to fight, we have only his one army to cope with, and which wastes
away at every engagement: we can not only reinforce, but can redouble our
numbers; he is cut off from all supplies, and must sooner or later inevitably
fall into our hands.
Shall a band of ten or twelve thousand robbers, who are this day fifteen hundred
or two thousand men less in strength than they were yesterday, conquer America,
or subdue even a single state? The thing cannot be, unless we sit down and
suffer them to do it. Another such a brush, notwithstanding we lost the ground,
would, by still reducing the enemy, put them in a condition to be afterwards
totally defeated. Could our whole army have come up to the attack at one time,
the consequences had probably been otherwise; but our having different parts of
the Brandywine creek to guard, and the uncertainty which road to Philadelphia
the enemy would attempt to take, naturally afforded them an opportunity of
passing with their main body at a place where only a part of ours could be
posted; for it must strike every thinking man with conviction, that it requires
a much greater force to oppose an enemy in several places, than is sufficient to
defeat him in any one place.
Men who are sincere in defending their freedom, will always feel concern at
every circumstance which seems to make against them; it is the natural and
honest consequence of all affectionate attachments, and the want of it is a
vice. But the dejection lasts only for a moment; they soon rise out of it with
additional vigor; the glow of hope, courage and fortitude, will, in a little
time, supply the place of every inferior passion, and kindle the whole heart
into heroism.
There is a mystery in the countenance of some causes, which we have not always
present judgment enough to explain. It is distressing to see an enemy advancing
into a country, but it is the only place in which we can beat them, and in which
we have always beaten them, whenever they made the attempt. The nearer any
disease approaches to a crisis, the nearer it is to a cure. Danger and
deliverance make their advances together, and it is only the last push, in which
one or the other takes the lead.
There are many men who will do their duty when it is not wanted; but a genuine
public spirit always appears most when there is most occasion for it. Thank God!
our army, though fatigued, is yet entire. The attack made by us yesterday, was
under many disadvantages, naturally arising from the uncertainty of knowing
which route the enemy would take; and, from that circumstance, the whole of our
force could not be brought up together time enough to engage all at once. Our
strength is yet reserved; and it is evident that Howe does not think himself a
gainer by the affair, otherwise he would this morning have moved down and
attacked General Washington.
Gentlemen of the city and country, it is in your power, by a spirited
improvement of the present circumstance, to turn it to a real advantage. Howe is
now weaker than before, and every shot will contribute to reduce him. You are
more immediately interested than any other part of the continent: your all is at
stake; it is not so with the general cause; you are devoted by the enemy to
plunder and destruction: it is the encouragement which Howe, the chief of
plunderers, has promised his army. Thus circumstanced, you may save yourselves
by a manly resistance, but you can have no hope in any other conduct. I never
yet knew our brave general, or any part of the army, officers or men, out of
heart, and I have seen them in circumstances a thousand times more trying than
the present. It is only those that are not in action, that feel languor and
heaviness, and the best way to rub it off is to turn out, and make sure work of
it.
Our army must undoubtedly feel fatigue, and want a reinforcement of rest though
not of valor. Our own interest and happiness call upon us to give them every
support in our power, and make the burden of the day, on which the safety of
this city depends, as light as possible. Remember, gentlemen, that we have
forces both to the northward and southward of Philadelphia, and if the enemy be
but stopped till those can arrive, this city will be saved, and the enemy
finally routed. You have too much at stake to hesitate. You ought not to think
an hour upon the matter, but to spring to action at once. Other states have been
invaded, have likewise driven off the invaders. Now our time and turn is come,
and perhaps the finishing stroke is reserved for us. When we look back on the
dangers we have been saved from, and reflect on the success we have been blessed
with, it would be sinful either to be idle or to despair.
I close this paper with a short address to General Howe. You, sir, are only
lingering out the period that shall bring with it your defeat. You have yet
scarce began upon the war, and the further you enter, the faster will your
troubles thicken. What you now enjoy is only a respite from ruin; an invitation
to destruction; something that will lead on to our deliverance at your expense.
We know the cause which we are engaged in, and though a passionate fondness for
it may make us grieve at every injury which threatens it, yet, when the moment
of concern is over, the determination to duty returns. We are not moved by the
gloomy smile of a worthless king, but by the ardent glow of generous patriotism.
We fight not to enslave, but to set a country free, and to make room upon the
earth for honest men to live in. In such a case we are sure that we are right;
and we leave to you the despairing reflection of being the tool of a miserable
tyrant.
COMMON SENSE.
PHILADELPHIA, Sept. 12, 1777.
The Crisis Number V
by Thomas Paine
V.
TO GENERAL SIR WILLIAM HOWE.
TO argue with a man who has renounced the use and authority of reason,
and whose philosophy consists in holding humanity in contempt, is like
administering medicine to the dead, or endeavoring to convert an atheist by
scripture. Enjoy, sir, your insensibility of feeling and reflecting. It is the
prerogative of animals. And no man will envy you these honors, in which a savage
only can be your rival and a bear your master.
As the generosity of this country rewarded your brother's services in the last
war, with an elegant monument in Westminster Abbey, it is consistent that she
should bestow some mark of distinction upon you. You certainly deserve her
notice, and a conspicuous place in the catalogue of extraordinary persons. Yet
it would be a pity to pass you from the world in state, and consign you to
magnificent oblivion among the tombs, without telling the future beholder why.
Judas is as much known as John, yet history ascribes their fame to very
different actions.
Sir William has undoubtedly merited a monument; but of what kind, or with what
inscription, where placed or how embellished, is a question that would puzzle
all the heralds of St. James's in the profoundest mood of historical
deliberation. We are at no loss, sir, to ascertain your real character, but
somewhat perplexed how to perpetuate its identity, and preserve it uninjured
from the transformations of time or mistake. A statuary may give a false
expression to your bust, or decorate it with some equivocal emblems, by which
you may happen to steal into reputation and impose upon the hereafter
traditionary world. Ill nature or ridicule may conspire, or a variety of
accidents combine to lessen, enlarge, or change Sir William's fame; and no doubt
but he who has taken so much pains to be singular in his conduct, would choose
to be just as singular in his exit, his monument and his epitaph.
The usual honors of the dead, to be sure, are not sufficiently sublime to escort
a character like you to the republic of dust and ashes; for however men may
differ in their ideas of grandeur or of government here, the grave is
nevertheless a perfect republic. Death is not the monarch of the dead, but of
the dying. The moment he obtains a conquest he loses a subject, and, like the
foolish king you serve, will, in the end, war himself out of all his dominions.
As a proper preliminary towards the arrangement of your funeral honors, we
readily admit of your new rank of knighthood. The title is perfectly in
character, and is your own, more by merit than creation. There are knights of
various orders, from the knight of the windmill to the knight of the post. The
former is your patron for exploits, and the latter will assist you in settling
your accounts. No honorary title could be more happily applied! The ingenuity is
sublime! And your royal master has discovered more genius in fitting you
therewith, than in generating the most finished figure for a button, or
descanting on the properties of a button mould.
But how, sir, shall we dispose of you? The invention of a statuary is exhausted,
and Sir William is yet unprovided with a monument. America is anxious to bestow
her funeral favors upon you, and wishes to do it in a manner that shall
distinguish you from all the deceased heroes of the last war. The Egyptian
method of embalming is not known to the present age, and hieroglyphical
pageantry hath outlived the science of deciphering it. Some other method,
therefore, must be thought of to immortalize the new knight of the windmill and
post. Sir William, thanks to his stars, is not oppressed with very delicate
ideas. He has no ambition of being wrapped up and handed about in myrrh, aloes
and cassia. Less expensive odors will suffice; and it fortunately happens that
the simple genius of America has discovered the art of preserving bodies, and
embellishing them too, with much greater frugality than the ancients. In
balmage, sir, of humble tar, you will be as secure as Pharaoh, and in a
hieroglyphic of feathers, rival in finery all the mummies of Egypt.
As you have already made your exit from the moral world, and by numberless acts
both of passionate and deliberate injustice engraved an "here lieth" on your
deceased honor, it must be mere affectation in you to pretend concern at the
humors or opinions of mankind respecting you. What remains of you may expire at
any time. The sooner the better. For he who survives his reputation, lives out
of despite of himself, like a man listening to his own reproach.
Thus entombed and ornamented, I leave you to the inspection of the curious, and
return to the history of your yet surviving actions. The character of Sir
William has undergone some extraordinary revolutions. since his arrival in
America. It is now fixed and known; and we have nothing to hope from your candor
or to fear from your capacity. Indolence and inability have too large a share in
your composition, ever to suffer you to be anything more than the hero of little
villainies and unfinished adventures. That, which to some persons appeared
moderation in you at first, was not produced by any real virtue of your own, but
by a contrast of passions, dividing and holding you in perpetual irresolution.
One vice will frequently expel another, without the least merit in the man; as
powers in contrary directions reduce each other to rest.
It became you to have supported a dignified solemnity of character; to have
shown a superior liberality of soul; to have won respect by an obstinate
perseverance in maintaining order, and to have exhibited on all occasions such
an unchangeable graciousness of conduct, that while we beheld in you the
resolution of an enemy, we might admire in you the sincerity of a man. You came
to America under the high sounding titles of commander and commissioner; not
only to suppress what you call rebellion, by arms, but to shame it out of
countenance by the excellence of your example. Instead of which, you have been
the patron of low and vulgar frauds, the encourager of Indian cruelties; and
have imported a cargo of vices blacker than those which you pretend to suppress.
Mankind are not universally agreed in their determination of right and wrong;
but there are certain actions which the consent of all nations and individuals
has branded with the unchangeable name of meanness. In the list of human vices
we find some of such a refined constitution, they cannot be carried into
practice without seducing some virtue to their assistance; but meanness has
neither alliance nor apology. It is generated in the dust and sweepings of other
vices, and is of such a hateful figure that all the rest conspire to disown it.
Sir William, the commissioner of George the Third, has at last vouchsafed to
give it rank and pedigree. He has placed the fugitive at the council board, and
dubbed it companion of the order of knighthood.
The particular act of meanness which I allude to in this description, is
forgery. You, sir, have abetted and patronized the forging and uttering
counterfeit continental bills. In the same New York newspapers in which your own
proclamation under your master's authority was published, offering, or
pretending to offer, pardon and protection to these states, there were repeated
advertisements of counterfeit money for sale, and persons who have come
officially from you, and under the sanction of your flag, have been taken up in
attempting to put them off.
A conduct so basely mean in a public character is without precedent or pretence.
Every nation on earth, whether friends or enemies, will unite in despising you.
'Tis an incendiary war upon society, which nothing can excuse or palliate,- an
improvement upon beggarly villany- and shows an inbred wretchedness of heart
made up between the venomous malignity of a serpent and the spiteful imbecility
of an inferior reptile.
The laws of any civilized country would condemn you to the gibbet without regard
to your rank or titles, because it is an action foreign to the usage and custom
of war; and should you fall into our hands, which pray God you may, it will be a
doubtful matter whether we are to consider you as a military prisoner or a
prisoner for felony.
Besides, it is exceedingly unwise and impolitic in you, or any other persons in
the English service, to promote or even encourage, or wink at the crime of
forgery, in any case whatever. Because, as the riches of England, as a nation,
are chiefly in paper, and the far greater part of trade among individuals is
carried on by the same medium, that is, by notes and drafts on one another,
they, therefore, of all people in the world, ought to endeavor to keep forgery
out of sight, and, if possible, not to revive the idea of it. It is dangerous to
make men familiar with a crime which they may afterwards practise to much
greater advantage against those who first taught them. Several officers in the
English army have made their exit at the gallows for forgery on their agents;
for we all know, who know any thing of England, that there is not a more
necessitous body of men, taking them generally, than what the English officers
are. They contrive to make a show at the expense of the tailors, and appear
clean at the charge of the washer-women.
England, has at this time, nearly two hundred million pounds sterling of public
money in paper, for which she has no real property: besides a large circulation
of bank notes, bank post bills, and promissory notes and drafts of private
bankers, merchants and tradesmen. She has the greatest quantity of paper
currency and the least quantity of gold and silver of any nation in Europe; the
real specie, which is about sixteen millions sterling, serves only as change in
large sums, which are always made in paper, or for payment in small ones. Thus
circumstanced, the nation is put to its wit's end, and obliged to be severe
almost to criminality, to prevent the practice and growth of forgery. Scarcely a
session passes at the Old Bailey, or an execution at Tyburn, but witnesses this
truth, yet you, sir, regardless of the policy which her necessity obliges her to
adopt, have made your whole army intimate with the crime. And as all armies at
the conclusion of a war, are too apt to carry into practice the vices of the
campaign, it will probably happen, that England will hereafter abound in
forgeries, to which art the practitioners were first initiated under your
authority in America. You, sir, have the honor of adding a new vice to the
military catalogue; and the reason, perhaps, why the invention was reserved for
you, is, because no general before was mean enough even to think of it.
That a man whose soul is absorbed in the low traffic of vulgar vice, is
incapable of moving in any superior region, is clearly shown in you by the event
of every campaign. Your military exploits have been without plan, object or
decision. Can it be possible that you or your employers suppose that the
possession of Philadelphia will be any ways equal to the expense or expectation
of the nation which supports you? What advantages does England derive from any
achievements of yours? To her it is perfectly indifferent what place you are in,
so long as the business of conquest is unperformed and the charge of maintaining
you remains the same.
If the principal events of the three campaigns be attended to, the balance will
appear against you at the close of each; but the last, in point of importance to
us, has exceeded the former two. It is pleasant to look back on dangers past,
and equally as pleasant to meditate on present ones when the way out begins to
appear. That period is now arrived, and the long doubtful winter of war is
changing to the sweeter prospects of victory and joy. At the close of the
campaign, in 1775, you were obliged to retreat from Boston. In the summer of
1776, you appeared with a numerous fleet and army in the harbor of New York. By
what miracle the continent was preserved in that season of danger is a subject
of admiration! If instead of wasting your time against Long Island you had run
up the North River, and landed any where above New York, the consequence must
have been, that either you would have compelled General Washington to fight you
with very unequal numbers, or he must have suddenly evacuated the city with the
loss of nearly all the stores of his army, or have surrendered for want of
provisions; the situation of the place naturally producing one or the other of
these events.
The preparations made to defend New York were, nevertheless, wise and military;
because your forces were then at sea, their numbers uncertain; storms, sickness,
or a variety of accidents might have disabled their coming, or so diminished
them on their passage, that those which survived would have been incapable of
opening the campaign with any prospect of success; in which case the defence
would have been sufficient and the place preserved; for cities that have been
raised from nothing with an infinitude of labor and expense, are not to be
thrown away on the bare probability of their being taken. On these grounds the
preparations made to maintain New York were as judicious as the retreat
afterwards. While you, in the interim, let slip the very opportunity which
seemed to put conquest in your power.
Through the whole of that campaign you had nearly double the forces which
General Washington immediately commanded. The principal plan at that time, on
our part, was to wear away the season with as little loss as possible, and to
raise the army for the next year. Long Island, New York, Forts Washington and
Lee were not defended after your superior force was known under any expectation
of their being finally maintained, but as a range of outworks, in the attacking
of which your time might be wasted, your numbers reduced, and your vanity amused
by possessing them on our retreat. It was intended to have withdrawn the
garrison from Fort Washington after it had answered the former of those
purposes, but the fate of that day put a prize into your hands without much
honor to yourselves.
Your progress through the Jerseys was accidental; you had it not even in
contemplation, or you would not have sent a principal part of your forces to
Rhode Island beforehand. The utmost hope of America in the year 1776, reached no
higher than that she might not then be conquered. She had no expectation of
defeating you in that campaign. Even the most cowardly Tory allowed, that, could
she withstand the shock of that summer, her independence would be past a doubt.
You had then greatly the advantage of her. You were formidable. Your military
knowledge was supposed to be complete. Your fleets and forces arrived without an
accident. You had neither experience nor reinforcements to wait for. You had
nothing to do but to begin, and your chance lay in the first vigorous onset.
America was young and unskilled. She was obliged to trust her defence to time
and practice; and has, by mere dint of perseverance, maintained her cause, and
brought the enemy to a condition, in which she is now capable of meeting him on
any grounds.
It is remarkable that in the campaign of 1776 you gained no more,
notwithstanding your great force, than what was given you by consent of
evacuation, except Fort Washington; while every advantage obtained by us was by
fair and hard fighting. The defeat of Sir Peter Parker was complete. The
conquest of the Hessians at Trenton, by the remains of a retreating army, which
but a few days before you affected to despise, is an instance of their heroic
perseverance very seldom to be met with. And the victory over the British troops
at Princeton, by a harassed and wearied party, who had been engaged the day
before and marched all night without refreshment, is attended with such a scene
of circumstances and superiority of generalship, as will ever give it a place in
the first rank in the history of great actions.
When I look back on the gloomy days of last winter, and see America suspended by
a thread, I feel a triumph of joy at the recollection of her delivery, and a
reverence for the characters which snatched her from destruction. To doubt now
would be a species of infidelity, and to forget the instruments which saved us
then would be ingratitude.
The close of that campaign left us with the spirit of conquerors. The northern
districts were relieved by the retreat of General Carleton over the lakes. The
army under your command were hunted back and had their bounds prescribed. The
continent began to feel its military importance, and the winter passed
pleasantly away in preparations for the next campaign.
However confident you might be on your first arrival, the result of the year
1776 gave you some idea of the difficulty, if not impossibility of conquest. To
this reason I ascribe your delay in opening the campaign of 1777. The face of
matters, on the close of the former year, gave you no encouragement to pursue a
discretionary war as soon as the spring admitted the taking the field; for
though conquest, in that case, would have given you a double portion of fame,
yet the experiment was too hazardous. The ministry, had you failed, would have
shifted the whole blame upon you, charged you with having acted without orders,
and condemned at once both your plan and execution.
To avoid the misfortunes, which might have involved you and your money accounts
in perplexity and suspicion, you prudently waited the arrival of a plan of
operations from England, which was that you should proceed for Philadelphia by
way of the Chesapeake, and that Burgoyne, after reducing Ticonderoga, should
take his route by Albany, and, if necessary, join you.
The splendid laurels of the last campaign have flourished in the north. In that
quarter America has surprised the world, and laid the foundation of this year's
glory. The conquest of Ticonderoga, (if it may be called a conquest) has, like
all your other victories, led on to ruin. Even the provisions taken in that
fortress (which by General Burgoyne's return was sufficient in bread and flour
for nearly 5000 men for ten weeks, and in beef and pork for the same number of
men for one month) served only to hasten his overthrow, by enabling him to
proceed to Saratoga, the place of his destruction. A short review of the
operations of the last campaign will show the condition of affairs on both
sides.
You have taken Ticonderoga and marched into Philadelphia. These are all the
events which the year has produced on your part. A trifling campaign indeed,
compared with the expenses of England and the conquest of the continent. On the
other side, a considerable part of your northern force has been routed by the
New York militia under General Herkemer. Fort Stanwix has bravely survived a
compound attack of soldiers and savages, and the besiegers have fled. The Battle
of Bennington has put a thousand prisoners into our hands, with all their arms,
stores, artillery and baggage. General Burgoyne, in two engagements, has been
defeated; himself, his army, and all that were his and theirs are now ours.
Ticonderoga and Independence [forts] are retaken, and not the shadow of an enemy
remains in all the northern districts. At this instant we have upwards of eleven
thousand prisoners, between sixty and seventy [captured] pieces of brass
ordnance, besides small arms, tents, stores, etc.
In order to know the real value of those advantages, we must reverse the scene,
and suppose General Gates and the force he commanded to be at your mercy as
prisoners, and General Burgoyne, with his army of soldiers and savages, to be
already joined to you in Pennsylvania. So dismal a picture can scarcely be
looked at. It has all the tracings and colorings of horror and despair; and
excites the most swelling emotions of gratitude by exhibiting the miseries we
are so graciously preserved from.
I admire the distribution of laurels around the continent. It is the earnest of
future union. South Carolina has had her day of sufferings and of fame; and the
other southern States have exerted themselves in proportion to the force that
invaded or insulted them. Towards the close of the campaign, in 1776, these
middle States were called upon and did their duty nobly. They were witnesses to
the almost expiring flame of human freedom. It was the close struggle of life
and death, the line of invisible division; and on which the unabated fortitude
of a Washington prevailed, and saved the spark that has since blazed in the
north with unrivalled lustre.
Let me ask, sir, what great exploits have you performed? Through all the variety
of changes and opportunities which the war has produced, I know no one action of
yours that can be styled masterly. You have moved in and out, backward and
forward, round and round, as if valor consisted in a military jig. The history
and figure of your movements would be truly ridiculous could they be justly
delineated. They resemble the labors of a puppy pursuing his tail; the end is
still at the same distance, and all the turnings round must be done over again.
The first appearance of affairs at Ticonderoga wore such an unpromising aspect,
that it was necessary, in July, to detach a part of the forces to the support of
that quarter, which were otherwise destined or intended to act against you; and
this, perhaps, has been the means of postponing your downfall to another
campaign. The destruction of one army at a time is work enough. We know, sir,
what we are about, what we have to do, and how to do it.
Your progress from the Chesapeake, was marked by no capital stroke of policy or
heroism. Your principal aim was to get General Washington between the Delaware
and Schuylkill, and between Philadelphia and your army. In that situation, with
a river on each of his flanks, which united about five miles below the city, and
your army above him, you could have intercepted his reinforcements and supplies,
cut off all his communication with the country, and, if necessary, have
despatched assistance to open a passage for General Burgoyne. This scheme was
too visible to succeed: for had General Washington suffered you to command the
open country above him, I think it a very reasonable conjecture that the
conquest of Burgoyne would not have taken place, because you could, in that
case, have relieved him. It was therefore necessary, while that important
victory was in suspense, to trepan you into a situation in which you could only
be on the defensive, without the power of affording him assistance. The
manoeuvre had its effect, and Burgoyne was conquered.
There has been something unmilitary and passive in you from the time of your
passing the Schuylkill and getting possession of Philadelphia, to the close of
the campaign. You mistook a trap for a conquest, the probability of which had
been made known to Europe, and the edge of your triumph taken off by our own
information long before.
Having got you into this situation, a scheme for a general attack upon you at
Germantown was carried into execution on the 4th of October, and though the
success was not equal to the excellence of the plan, yet the attempting it
proved the genius of America to be on the rise, and her power approaching to
superiority. The obscurity of the morning was your best friend, for a fog is
always favorable to a hunted enemy. Some weeks after this you likewise planned
an attack on General Washington while at Whitemarsh. You marched out with
infinite parade, but on finding him preparing to attack you next morning, you
prudently turned about, and retreated to Philadelphia with all the precipitation
of a man conquered in imagination.
Immediately after the battle of Germantown, the probability of Burgoyne's defeat
gave a new policy to affairs in Pennsylvania, and it was judged most consistent
with the general safety of America, to wait the issue of the northern campaign.
Slow and sure is sound work. The news of that victory arrived in our camp on the
18th of October, and no sooner did that shout of joy, and the report of the
thirteen cannon reach your ears, than you resolved upon a retreat, and the next
day, that is, on the 19th, you withdrew your drooping army into Philadelphia.
This movement was evidently dictated by fear; and carried with it a positive
confession that you dreaded a second attack. It was hiding yourself among women
and children, and sleeping away the choicest part of the campaign in expensive
inactivity. An army in a city can never be a conquering army. The situation
admits only of defence. It is mere shelter: and every military power in Europe
will conclude you to be eventually defeated.
The time when you made this retreat was the very time you ought to have fought a
battle, in order to put yourself in condition of recovering in Pennsylvania what
you had lost in Saratoga. And the reason why you did not, must be either
prudence or cowardice; the former supposes your inability, and the latter needs
no explanation. I draw no conclusions, sir, but such as are naturally deduced
from known and visible facts, and such as will always have a being while the
facts which produced them remain unaltered.
After this retreat a new difficulty arose which exhibited the power of Britain
in a very contemptible light; which was the attack and defence of Mud Island.
For several weeks did that little unfinished fortress stand out against all the
attempts of Admiral and General Howe. It was the fable of Bender realized on the
Delaware. Scheme after scheme, and force upon force were tried and defeated. The
garrison, with scarce anything to cover them but their bravery, survived in the
midst of mud, shot and shells, and were at last obliged to give it up more to
the powers of time and gunpowder than to military superiority of the besiegers.
It is my sincere opinion that matters are in much worse condition with you than
what is generally known. Your master's speech at the opening of Parliament, is
like a soliloquy on ill luck. It shows him to be coming a little to his reason,
for sense of pain is the first symptom of recovery, in profound stupefaction.
His condition is deplorable. He is obliged to submit to all the insults of
France and Spain, without daring to know or resent them; and thankful for the
most trivial evasions to the most humble remonstrances. The time was when he
could not deign an answer to a petition from America, and the time now is when
he dare not give an answer to an affront from France. The capture of Burgoyne's
army will sink his consequence as much in Europe as in America. In his speech he
expresses his suspicions at the warlike preparations of France and Spain, and as
he has only the one army which you command to support his character in the world
with, it remains very uncertain when, or in what quarter it will be most wanted,
or can be best employed; and this will partly account for the great care you
take to keep it from action and attacks, for should Burgoyne's fate be yours,
which it probably will, England may take her endless farewell not only of all
America but of all the West Indies.
Never did a nation invite destruction upon itself with the eagerness and the
ignorance with which Britain has done. Bent upon the ruin of a young and
unoffending country, she has drawn the sword that has wounded herself to the
heart, and in the agony of her resentment has applied a poison for a cure. Her
conduct towards America is a compound of rage and lunacy; she aims at the
government of it, yet preserves neither dignity nor character in her methods to
obtain it. Were government a mere manufacture or article of commerce, immaterial
by whom it should be made or sold, we might as well employ her as another, but
when we consider it as the fountain from whence the general manners and morality
of a country take their rise, that the persons entrusted with the execution
thereof are by their serious example an authority to support these principles,
how abominably absurd is the idea of being hereafter governed by a set of men
who have been guilty of forgery, perjury, treachery, theft and every species of
villany which the lowest wretches on earth could practise or invent. What
greater public curse can befall any country than to be under such authority, and
what greater blessing than to be delivered therefrom. The soul of any man of
sentiment would rise in brave rebellion against them, and spurn them from the
earth.
The malignant and venomous tempered General Vaughan has amused his savage fancy
in burning the whole town of Kingston, in York government, and the late governor
of that state, Mr. Tryon, in his letter to General Parsons, has endeavored to
justify it and declared his wish to burn the houses of every committeeman in the
country. Such a confession from one who was once intrusted with the powers of
civil government, is a reproach to the character. But it is the wish and the
declaration of a man whom anguish and disappointment have driven to despair, and
who is daily decaying into the grave with constitutional rottenness.
There is not in the compass of language a sufficiency of words to express the
baseness of your king, his ministry and his army. They have refined upon villany
till it wants a name. To the fiercer vices of former ages they have added the
dregs and scummings of the most finished rascality, and are so completely sunk
in serpentine deceit, that there is not left among them one generous enemy.
From such men and such masters, may the gracious hand of Heaven preserve
America! And though the sufferings she now endures are heavy, and severe, they
are like straws in the wind compared to the weight of evils she would feel under
the government of your king, and his pensioned Parliament.
There is something in meanness which excites a species of resentment that never
subsides, and something in cruelty which stirs up the heart to the highest agony
of human hatred; Britain has filled up both these characters till no addition
can be made, and has not reputation left with us to obtain credit for the
slightest promise. The will of God has parted us, and the deed is registered for
eternity. When she shall be a spot scarcely visible among the nations, America
shall flourish the favorite of heaven, and the friend of mankind.
For the domestic happiness of Britain and the peace of the world, I wish she had
not a foot of land but what is circumscribed within her own island. Extent of
dominion has been her ruin, and instead of civilizing others has brutalized
herself. Her late reduction of India, under Clive and his successors, was not so
properly a conquest as an extermination of mankind. She is the only power who
could practise the prodigal barbarity of tying men to mouths of loaded cannon
and blowing them away. It happens that General Burgoyne, who made the report of
that horrid transaction, in the House of Commons, is now a prisoner with us, and
though an enemy, I can appeal to him for the truth of it, being confident that
he neither can nor will deny it. Yet Clive received the approbation of the last
Parliament.
When we take a survey of mankind, we cannot help cursing the wretch, who, to the
unavoidable misfortunes of nature, shall wilfully add the calamities of war. One
would think there were evils enough in the world without studying to increase
them, and that life is sufficiently short without shaking the sand that measures
it. The histories of Alexander, and Charles of Sweden, are the histories of
human devils; a good man cannot think of their actions without abhorrence, nor
of their deaths without rejoicing. To see the bounties of heaven destroyed, the
beautiful face of nature laid waste, and the choicest works of creation and art
tumbled into ruin, would fetch a curse from the soul of piety itself. But in
this country the aggravation is heightened by a new combination of affecting
circumstances. America was young, and, compared with other countries, was
virtuous. None but a Herod of uncommon malice would have made war upon infancy
and innocence: and none but a people of the most finished fortitude, dared under
those circumstances, have resisted the tyranny. The natives, or their ancestors,
had fled from the former oppressions of England, and with the industry of bees
had changed a wilderness into a habitable world. To Britain they were indebted
for nothing. The country was the gift of heaven, and God alone is their Lord and
Sovereign.
The time, sir, will come when you, in a melancholy hour, shall reckon up your
miseries by your murders in America. Life, with you, begins to wear a clouded
aspect. The vision of pleasurable delusion is wearing away, and changing to the
barren wild of age and sorrow. The poor reflection of having served your king
will yield you no consolation in your parting moments. He will crumble to the
same undistinguished ashes with yourself, and have sins enough of his own to
answer for. It is not the farcical benedictions of a bishop, nor the cringing
hypocrisy of a court of chaplains, nor the formality of an act of Parliament,
that can change guilt into innocence, or make the punishment one pang the less.
You may, perhaps, be unwilling to be serious, but this destruction of the goods
of Providence, this havoc of the human race, and this sowing the world with
mischief, must be accounted for to him who made and governs it. To us they are
only present sufferings, but to him they are deep rebellions.
If there is a sin superior to every other, it is that of wilful and offensive
war. Most other sins are circumscribed within narrow limits, that is, the power
of one man cannot give them a very general extension, and many kinds of sins
have only a mental existence from which no infection arises; but he who is the
author of a war, lets loose the whole contagion of hell, and opens a vein that
bleeds a nation to death. We leave it to England and Indians to boast of these
honors; we feel no thirst for such savage glory; a nobler flame, a purer spirit
animates America. She has taken up the sword of virtuous defence; she has
bravely put herself between Tyranny and Freedom, between a curse and a blessing,
determined to expel the one and protect the other.
It is the object only of war that makes it honorable. And if there was ever a
just war since the world began, it is this in which America is now engaged. She
invaded no land of yours. She hired no mercenaries to burn your towns, nor
Indians to massacre their inhabitants. She wanted nothing from you, and was
indebted for nothing to you: and thus circumstanced, her defence is honorable
and her prosperity is certain.
Yet it is not on the justice only, but likewise on the importance of this cause
that I ground my seeming enthusiastical confidence of our success. The vast
extension of America makes her of too much value in the scale of Providence, to
be cast like a pearl before swine, at the feet of an European island; and of
much less consequence would it be that Britain were sunk in the sea than that
America should miscarry. There has been such a chain of extraordinary events in
the discovery of this country at first, in the peopling and planting it
afterwards, in the rearing and nursing it to its present state, and in the
protection of it through the present war, that no man can doubt, but Providence
has some nobler end to accomplish than the gratification of the petty elector of
Hanover, or the ignorant and insignificant king of Britain.
As the blood of the martyrs has been the seed of the Christian church, so the
political persecutions of England will and have already enriched America with
industry, experience, union, and importance. Before the present era she was a
mere chaos of uncemented colonies, individually exposed to the ravages of the
Indians and the invasion of any power that Britain should be at war with. She
had nothing that she could call her own. Her felicity depended upon accident.
The convulsions of Europe might have thrown her from one conqueror to another,
till she had been the slave of all, and ruined by every one; for until she had
spirit enough to become her own master, there was no knowing to which master she
should belong. That period, thank God, is past, and she is no longer the
dependent, disunited colonies of Britain, but the independent and United States
of America, knowing no master but heaven and herself. You, or your king, may
call this "delusion," "rebellion," or what name you please. To us it is
perfectly indifferent. The issue will determine the character, and time will
give it a name as lasting as his own.
You have now, sir, tried the fate of three campaigns, and can fully declare to
England, that nothing is to be got on your part, but blows and broken bones, and
nothing on hers but waste of trade and credit, and an increase of poverty and
taxes. You are now only where you might have been two years ago, without the
loss of a single ship, and yet not a step more forward towards the conquest of
the continent; because, as I have already hinted, "an army in a city can never
be a conquering army." The full amount of your losses, since the beginning of
the war, exceeds twenty thousand men, besides millions of treasure, for which
you have nothing in exchange. Our expenses, though great, are circulated within
ourselves. Yours is a direct sinking of money, and that from both ends at once;
first, in hiring troops out of the nation, and in paying them afterwards,
because the money in neither case can return to Britain. We are already in
possession of the prize, you only in pursuit of it. To us it is a real treasure,
to you it would be only an empty triumph. Our expenses will repay themselves
with tenfold interest, while yours entail upon you everlasting poverty.
Take a review, sir, of the ground which you have gone over, and let it teach you
policy, if it cannot honesty. You stand but on a very tottering foundation. A
change of the ministry in England may probably bring your measures into
question, and your head to the block. Clive, with all his successes, had some
difficulty in escaping, and yours being all a war of losses, will afford you
less pretensions, and your enemies more grounds for impeachment.
Go home, sir, and endeavor to save the remains of your ruined country, by a just
representation of the madness of her measures. A few moments, well applied, may
yet preserve her from political destruction. I am not one of those who wish to
see Europe in a flame, because I am persuaded that such an event will not
shorten the war. The rupture, at present, is confined between the two powers of
America and England. England finds that she cannot conquer America, and America
has no wish to conquer England. You are fighting for what you can never obtain,
and we defending what we never mean to part with. A few words, therefore, settle
the bargain. Let England mind her own business and we will mind ours. Govern
yourselves, and we will govern ourselves. You may then trade where you please
unmolested by us, and we will trade where we please unmolested by you; and such
articles as we can purchase of each other better than elsewhere may be mutually
done. If it were possible that you could carry on the war for twenty years you
must still come to this point at last, or worse, and the sooner you think of it
the better it will be for you.
My official situation enables me to know the repeated insults which Britain is
obliged to put up with from foreign powers, and the wretched shifts that she is
driven to, to gloss them over. Her reduced strength and exhausted coffers in a
three years' war with America, has given a powerful superiority to France and
Spain. She is not now a match for them. But if neither councils can prevail on
her to think, nor sufferings awaken her to reason, she must e'en go on, till the
honor of England becomes a proverb of contempt, and Europe dub her the Land of
Fools.
I am, Sir, with every wish for an honorable peace,
Your friend, enemy, and countryman,
COMMON SENSE.
To the Inhabitants Of America
by Thomas Paine
To The Inhabitants Of America.
WITH all the pleasure with which a man exchanges bad company for good, I
take my leave of Sir William and return to you. It is now nearly three years
since the tyranny of Britain received its first repulse by the arms of America.
A period which has given birth to a new world, and erected a monument to the
folly of the old.
I cannot help being sometimes surprised at the complimentary references which I
have seen and heard made to ancient histories and transactions. The wisdom,
civil governments, and sense of honor of the states of Greece and Rome, are
frequently held up as objects of excellence and imitation. Mankind have lived to
very little purpose, if, at this period of the world, they must go two or three
thousand years back for lessons and examples. We do great injustice to ourselves
by placing them in such a superior line. We have no just authority for it,
neither can we tell why it is that we should suppose ourselves inferior.
Could the mist of antiquity be cleared away, and men and things be viewed as
they really were, it is more than probable that they would admire us, rather
than we them. America has surmounted a greater variety and combination of
difficulties, than, I believe, ever fell to the share of any one people, in the
same space of time, and has replenished the world with more useful knowledge and
sounder maxims of civil government than were ever produced in any age before.
Had it not been for America, there had been no such thing as freedom left
throughout the whole universe. England has lost hers in a long chain of right
reasoning from wrong principles, and it is from this country, now, that she must
learn the resolution to redress herself, and the wisdom how to accomplish it.
The Grecians and Romans were strongly possessed of the spirit of liberty but not
the principle, for at the time that they were determined not to be slaves
themselves, they employed their power to enslave the rest of mankind. But this
distinguished era is blotted by no one misanthropical vice. In short, if the
principle on which the cause is founded, the universal blessings that are to
arise from it, the difficulties that accompanied it, the wisdom with which it
has been debated, the fortitude by which it has been supported, the strength of
the power which we had to oppose, and the condition in which we undertook it, be
all taken in one view, we may justly style it the most virtuous and illustrious
revolution that ever graced the history of mankind.
A good opinion of ourselves is exceedingly necessary in private life, but
absolutely necessary in public life, and of the utmost importance in supporting
national character. I have no notion of yielding the palm of the United States
to any Grecians or Romans that were ever born. We have equalled the bravest in
times of danger, and excelled the wisest in construction of civil governments.
From this agreeable eminence let us take a review of present affairs. The spirit
of corruption is so inseparably interwoven with British politics, that their
ministry suppose all mankind are governed by the same motives. They have no idea
of a people submitting even to temporary inconvenience from an attachment to
rights and privileges. Their plans of business are calculated by the hour and
for the hour, and are uniform in nothing but the corruption which gives them
birth. They never had, neither have they at this time, any regular plan for the
conquest of America by arms. They know not how to go about it, neither have they
power to effect it if they did know. The thing is not within the compass of
human practicability, for America is too extensive either to be fully conquered
or passively defended. But she may be actively defended by defeating or making
prisoners of the army that invades her. And this is the only system of defence
that can be effectual in a large country.
There is something in a war carried on by invasion which makes it differ in
circumstances from any other mode of war, because he who conducts it cannot tell
whether the ground he gains be for him, or against him, when he first obtains
it. In the winter of 1776, General Howe marched with an air of victory through
the Jerseys, the consequence of which was his defeat; and General Burgoyne at
Saratoga experienced the same fate from the same cause. The Spaniards, about two
years ago, were defeated by the Algerines in the same manner, that is, their
first triumphs became a trap in which they were totally routed. And whoever will
attend to the circumstances and events of a war carried on by invasion, will
find, that any invader, in order to be finally conquered must first begin to
conquer.
I confess myself one of those who believe the loss of Philadelphia to be
attended with more advantages than injuries. The case stood thus: The enemy
imagined Philadelphia to be of more importance to us than it really was; for we
all know that it had long ceased to be a port: not a cargo of goods had been
brought into it for near a twelvemonth, nor any fixed manufactories, nor even
ship-building, carried on in it; yet as the enemy believed the conquest of it to
be practicable, and to that belief added the absurd idea that the soul of all
America was centred there, and would be conquered there, it naturally follows
that their possession of it, by not answering the end proposed, must break up
the plans they had so foolishly gone upon, and either oblige them to form a new
one, for which their present strength is not sufficient, or to give over the
attempt.
We never had so small an army to fight against, nor so fair an opportunity of
final success as now. The death wound is already given. The day is ours if we
follow it up. The enemy, by his situation, is within our reach, and by his
reduced strength is within our power. The ministers of Britain may rage as they
please, but our part is to conquer their armies. Let them wrangle and welcome,
but let, it not draw our attention from the one thing needful. Here, in this
spot is our own business to be accomplished, our felicity secured. What we have
now to do is as clear as light, and the way to do it is as straight as a line.
It needs not to be commented upon, yet, in order to be perfectly understood I
will put a case that cannot admit of a mistake.
Had the armies under Generals Howe and Burgoyne been united, and taken post at
Germantown, and had the northern army under General Gates been joined to that
under General Washington, at Whitemarsh, the consequence would have been a
general action; and if in that action we had killed and taken the same number of
officers and men, that is, between nine and ten thousand, with the same quantity
of artillery, arms, stores, etc., as have been taken at the northward, and
obliged General Howe with the remains of his army, that is, with the same number
he now commands, to take shelter in Philadelphia, we should certainly have
thought ourselves the greatest heroes in the world; and should, as soon as the
season permitted, have collected together all the force of the continent and
laid siege to the city, for it requires a much greater force to besiege an enemy
in a town than to defeat him in the field. The case now is just the same as if
it had been produced by the means I have here supposed. Between nine and ten
thousand have been killed and taken, all their stores are in our possession, and
General Howe, in consequence of that victory, has thrown himself for shelter
into Philadelphia. He, or his trifling friend Galloway, may form what pretences
they please, yet no just reason can be given for their going into winter
quarters so early as the 19th of October, but their apprehensions of a defeat if
they continued out, or their conscious inability of keeping the field with
safety. I see no advantage which can arise to America by hunting the enemy from
state to state. It is a triumph without a prize, and wholly unworthy the
attention of a people determined to conquer. Neither can any state promise
itself security while the enemy remains in a condition to transport themselves
from one part of the continent to another. Howe, likewise, cannot conquer where
we have no army to oppose, therefore any such removals in him are mean and
cowardly, and reduces Britain to a common pilferer. If he retreats from
Philadelphia, he will be despised; if he stays, he may be shut up and starved
out, and the country, if he advances into it, may become his Saratoga. He has
his choice of evils and we of opportunities. If he moves early, it is not only a
sign but a proof that he expects no reinforcement, and his delay will prove that
he either waits for the arrival of a plan to go upon, or force to execute it, or
both; in which case our strength will increase more than his, therefore in any
case we cannot be wrong if we do but proceed.
The particular condition of Pennsylvania deserves the attention of all the other
States. Her military strength must not be estimated by the number of
inhabitants. Here are men of all nations, characters, professions and interests.
Here are the firmest Whigs, surviving, like sparks in the ocean, unquenched and
uncooled in the midst of discouragement and disaffection. Here are men losing
their all with cheerfulness, and collecting fire and fortitude from the flames
of their own estates. Here are others skulking in secret, many making a market
of the times, and numbers who are changing to Whig or Tory with the
circumstances of every day.
It is by a mere dint of fortitude and perseverance that the Whigs of this State
have been able to maintain so good a countenance, and do even what they have
done. We want help, and the sooner it can arrive the more effectual it will be.
The invaded State, be it which it may, will always feel an additional burden
upon its back, and be hard set to support its civil power with sufficient
authority; and this difficulty will rise or fall, in proportion as the other
states throw in their assistance to the common cause.
The enemy will most probably make many manoeuvres at the opening of this
campaign, to amuse and draw off the attention of the several States from the one
thing needful. We may expect to hear of alarms and pretended expeditions to this
place and that place, to the southward, the eastward, and the northward, all
intended to prevent our forming into one formidable body. The less the enemy's
strength is, the more subtleties of this kind will they make use of. Their
existence depends upon it, because the force of America, when collected, is
sufficient to swallow their present army up. It is therefore our business to
make short work of it, by bending our whole attention to this one principal
point, for the instant that the main body under General Howe is defeated, all
the inferior alarms throughout the continent, like so many shadows, will follow
his downfall.
The only way to finish a war with the least possible bloodshed, or perhaps
without any, is to collect an army, against the power of which the enemy shall
have no chance. By not doing this, we prolong the war, and double both the
calamities and expenses of it. What a rich and happy country would America be,
were she, by a vigorous exertion, to reduce Howe as she has reduced Burgoyne.
Her currency would rise to millions beyond its present value. Every man would be
rich, and every man would have it in his power to be happy. And why not do these
things? What is there to hinder? America is her own mistress and can do what she
pleases.
If we had not at this time a man in the field, we could, nevertheless, raise an
army in a few weeks sufficient to overwhelm all the force which General Howe at
present commands. Vigor and determination will do anything and everything. We
began the war with this kind of spirit, why not end it with the same? Here,
gentlemen, is the enemy. Here is the army. The interest, the happiness of all
America, is centred in this half ruined spot. Come and help us. Here are
laurels, come and share them. Here are Tories, come and help us to expel them.
Here are Whigs that will make you welcome, and enemies that dread your coming.
The worst of all policies is that of doing things by halves. Penny-wise and
pound-foolish, has been the ruin of thousands. The present spring, if rightly
improved, will free us from our troubles, and save us the expense of millions.
We have now only one army to cope with. No opportunity can be fairer; no
prospect more promising. I shall conclude this paper with a few outlines of a
plan, either for filling up the battalions with expedition, or for raising an
additional force, for any limited time, on any sudden emergency.
That in which every man is interested, is every man's duty to support. And any
burden which falls equally on all men, and from which every man is to receive an
equal benefit, is consistent with the most perfect ideas of liberty. I would
wish to revive something of that virtuous ambition which first called America
into the field. Then every man was eager to do his part, and perhaps the
principal reason why we have in any degree fallen therefrom, is because we did
not set a right value by it at first, but left it to blaze out of itself,
instead of regulating and preserving it by just proportions of rest and service.
Suppose any State whose number of effective inhabitants was 80,000, should be
required to furnish 3,200 men towards the defence of the continent on any sudden
emergency.
1st, Let the whole number of effective inhabitants be
divided into hundreds; then if each of those hundreds turn out four men, the
whole number of 3,200 will be had.
2d, Let the name of each hundred men be entered in a book, and let four
dollars be collected from each man, with as much more as any of the gentlemen,
whose abilities can afford it, shall please to throw in, which gifts likewise
shall be entered against the names of the donors.
3d, Let the sums so collected be offered as a present, over and above the
bounty of twenty dollars, to any four who may be inclined to propose
themselves as volunteers: if more than four offer, the majority of the
subscribers present shall determine which; if none offer, then four out of the
hundred shall be taken by lot, who shall be entitled to the said sums, and
shall either go, or provide others that will, in the space of six days.
4th, As it will always happen that in the space of ground on which a hundred
men shall live, there will be always a number of persons who, by age and
infirmity, are incapable of doing personal service, and as such persons are
generally possessed of the greatest part of property in any country, their
portion of service, therefore, will be to furnish each man with a blanket,
which will make a regimental coat, jacket, and breeches, or clothes in lieu
thereof, and another for a watch cloak, and two pair of shoes; for however
choice people may be of these things matters not in cases of this kind; those
who live always in houses can find many ways to keep themselves warm, but it
is a shame and a sin to suffer a soldier in the field to want a blanket while
there is one in the country.
Should the clothing not be wanted, the superannuated or infirm
persons possessing property, may, in lieu thereof, throw in their money
subscriptions towards increasing the bounty; for though age will naturally
exempt a person from personal service, it cannot exempt him from his share of
the charge, because the men are raised for the defence of property and liberty
jointly.
There never was a scheme against which objections might not be raised. But this
alone is not a sufficient reason for rejection. The only line to judge truly
upon is to draw out and admit all the objections which can fairly be made, and
place against them all the contrary qualities, conveniences and advantages, then
by striking a balance you come at the true character of any scheme, principle or
position.
The most material advantages of the plan here proposed are, ease, expedition,
and cheapness; yet the men so raised get a much larger bounty than is any where
at present given; because all the expenses, extravagance, and consequent
idleness of recruiting are saved or prevented. The country incurs no new debt
nor interest thereon; the whole matter being all settled at once and entirely
done with. It is a subscription answering all the purposes of a tax, without
either the charge or trouble of collecting. The men are ready for the field with
the greatest possible expedition, because it becomes the duty of the inhabitants
themselves, in every part of the country, to find their proportion of men
instead of leaving it to a recruiting sergeant, who, be he ever so industrious,
cannot know always where to apply.
I do not propose this as a regular digested plan, neither will the limits of
this paper admit of any further remarks upon it. I believe it to be a hint
capable of much improvement, and as such submit it to the public.
COMMON SENSE.
LANCASTER, March 21, 1778.
The Crisis Number VI
by Thomas Paine
VI.
TO THE EARL OF CARLISLE, GENERAL CLINTON,
AND WILLIAM EDEN, ESQ., BRITISH COMMISSIONERS
AT NEW YORK.
THERE is a dignity in the warm passions of a Whig, which is never to be
found in the cold malice of a Tory. In the one nature is only heated- in the
other she is poisoned. The instant the former has it in his power to punish, he
feels a disposition to forgive; but the canine venom of the latter knows no
relief but revenge. This general distinction will, I believe, apply in all
cases, and suits as well the meridian of England as America.
As I presume your last proclamation will undergo the strictures of other pens, I
shall confine my remarks to only a few parts thereof. All that you have said
might have been comprised in half the compass. It is tedious and unmeaning, and
only a repetition of your former follies, with here and there an offensive
aggravation. Your cargo of pardons will have no market. It is unfashionable to
look at them- even speculation is at an end. They have become a perfect drug,
and no way calculated for the climate.
In the course of your proclamation you say, "The policy as well as the
benevolence of Great Britain have thus far checked the extremes of war, when
they tended to distress a people still considered as their fellow subjects, and
to desolate a country shortly to become again a source of mutual advantage."
What you mean by "the benevolence of Great Britain" is to me inconceivable. To
put a plain question; do you consider yourselves men or devils? For until this
point is settled, no determinate sense can be put upon the expression. You have
already equalled and in many cases excelled, the savages of either Indies; and
if you have yet a cruelty in store you must have imported it, unmixed with every
human material, from the original warehouse of hell.
To the interposition of Providence, and her blessings on our endeavors, and not
to British benevolence are we indebted for the short chain that limits your
ravages. Remember you do not, at this time, command a foot of land on the
continent of America. Staten Island, York Island, a small part of Long Island,
and Rhode Island, circumscribe your power; and even those you hold at the
expense of the West Indies. To avoid a defeat, or prevent a desertion of your
troops, you have taken up your quarters in holes and corners of inaccessible
security; and in order to conceal what every one can perceive, you now endeavor
to impose your weakness upon us for an act of mercy. If you think to succeed by
such shadowy devices, you are but infants in the political world; you have the
A, B, C, of stratagem yet to learn, and are wholly ignorant of the people you
have to contend with. Like men in a state of intoxication, you forget that the
rest of the world have eyes, and that the same stupidity which conceals you from
yourselves exposes you to their satire and contempt.
The paragraph which I have quoted, stands as an introduction to the following:
"But when that country [America] professes the unnatural design, not only of
estranging herself from us, but of mortgaging herself and her resources to our
enemies, the whole contest is changed: and the question is how far Great Britain
may, by every means in her power, destroy or render useless, a connection
contrived for her ruin, and the aggrandizement of France. Under such
circumstances, the laws of self-preservation must direct the conduct of Britain,
and, if the British colonies are to become an accession to France, will direct
her to render that accession of as little avail as possible to her enemy."
I consider you in this declaration, like madmen biting in the hour of death. It
contains likewise a fraudulent meanness; for, in order to justify a barbarous
conclusion, you have advanced a false position. The treaty we have formed with
France is open, noble, and generous. It is true policy, founded on sound
philosophy, and neither a surrender or mortgage, as you would scandalously
insinuate. I have seen every article, and speak from positive knowledge. In
France, we have found an affectionate friend and faithful ally; in Britain, we
have found nothing but tyranny, cruelty, and infidelity.
But the happiness is, that the mischief you threaten, is not in your power to
execute; and if it were, the punishment would return upon you in a ten-fold
degree. The humanity of America has hitherto restrained her from acts of
retaliation, and the affection she retains for many individuals in England, who
have fed, clothed and comforted her prisoners, has, to the present day, warded
off her resentment, and operated as a screen to the whole. But even these
considerations must cease, when national objects interfere and oppose them.
Repeated aggravations will provoke a retort, and policy justify the measure. We
mean now to take you seriously up upon your own ground and principle, and as you
do, so shall you be done by.
You ought to know, gentlemen, that England and Scotland, are far more exposed to
incendiary desolation than America, in her present state, can possibly be. We
occupy a country, with but few towns, and whose riches consist in land and
annual produce. The two last can suffer but little, and that only within a very
limited compass. In Britain it is otherwise. Her wealth lies chiefly in cities
and large towns, the depositories of manufactures and fleets of merchantmen.
There is not a nobleman's country seat but may be laid in ashes by a single
person. Your own may probably contribute to the proof: in short, there is no
evil which cannot be returned when you come to incendiary mischief. The ships in
the Thames, may certainly be as easily set on fire, as the temporary bridge was
a few years ago; yet of that affair no discovery was ever made; and the loss you
would sustain by such an event, executed at a proper season, is infinitely
greater than any you can inflict. The East India House and the Bank, neither are
nor can be secure from this sort of destruction, and, as Dr. Price justly
observes, a fire at the latter would bankrupt the nation. It has never been the
custom of France and England when at war, to make those havocs on each other,
because the ease with which they could retaliate rendered it as impolitic as if
each had destroyed his own.
But think not, gentlemen, that our distance secures you, or our invention fails
us. We can much easier accomplish such a point than any nation in Europe. We
talk the same language, dress in the same habit, and appear with the same
manners as yourselves. We can pass from one part of England to another
unsuspected; many of us are as well acquainted with the country as you are, and
should you impolitically provoke us, you will most assuredly lament the effects
of it. Mischiefs of this kind require no army to execute them. The means are
obvious, and the opportunities unguardable. I hold up a warning to our senses,
if you have any left, and "to the unhappy people likewise, whose affairs are
committed to you."* I call not with the rancor of an enemy, but the earnestness
of a friend, on the deluded people of England, lest, between your blunders and
theirs, they sink beneath the evils contrived for us.
* General [Sir H.] Clinton's letter to Congress.
He who lives in a glass house," says a Spanish proverb,
"should never begin throwing stones." This, gentlemen, is exactly your case, and
you must be the most ignorant of mankind, or suppose us so, not to see on which
side the balance of accounts will fall. There are many other modes of
retaliation, which, for several reasons, I choose not to mention. But be assured
of this, that the instant you put your threat into execution, a counter-blow
will follow it. If you openly profess yourselves savages, it is high time we
should treat you as such, and if nothing but distress can recover you to reason,
to punish will become an office of charity.
While your fleet lay last winter in the Delaware, I offered my service to the
Pennsylvania Navy Board then at Trenton, as one who would make a party with
them, or any four or five gentlemen, on an expedition down the river to set fire
to it, and though it was not then accepted, nor the thing personally attempted,
it is more than probable that your own folly will provoke a much more ruinous
act. Say not when mischief is done, that you had not warning, and remember that
we do not begin it, but mean to repay it. Thus much for your savage and
impolitic threat.
In another part of your proclamation you say, "But if the honors of a military
life are become the object of the Americans, let them seek those honors under
the banners of their rightful sovereign, and in fighting the battles of the
united British Empire, against our late mutual and natural enemies." Surely! the
union of absurdity with madness was never marked in more distinguishable lines
than these. Your rightful sovereign, as you call him, may do well enough for
you, who dare not inquire into the humble capacities of the man; but we, who
estimate persons and things by their real worth, cannot suffer our judgments to
be so imposed upon; and unless it is your wish to see him exposed, it ought to
be your endeavor to keep him out of sight. The less you have to say about him
the better. We have done with him, and that ought to be answer enough. You have
been often told so. Strange! that the answer must be so often repeated. You go
a-begging with your king as with a brat, or with some unsaleable commodity you
were tired of; and though every body tells you no, no, still you keep hawking
him about. But there is one that will have him in a little time, and as we have
no inclination to disappoint you of a customer, we bid nothing for him.
The impertinent folly of the paragraph that I have just quoted, deserves no
other notice than to be laughed at and thrown by, but the principle on which it
is founded is detestable. We are invited to submit to a man who has attempted by
every cruelty to destroy us, and to join him in making war against France, who
is already at war against him for our support.
Can Bedlam, in concert with Lucifer, form a more mad and devilish request? Were
it possible a people could sink into such apostacy they would deserve to be
swept from the earth like the inhabitants of Sodom and Gomorrah. The proposition
is an universal affront to the rank which man holds in the creation, and an
indignity to him who placed him there. It supposes him made up without a spark
of honor, and under no obligation to God or man.
What sort of men or Christians must you suppose the Americans to be, who, after
seeing their most humble petitions insultingly rejected; the most grievous laws
passed to distress them in every quarter; an undeclared war let loose upon them,
and Indians and negroes invited to the slaughter; who, after seeing their
kinsmen murdered, their fellow citizens starved to death in prisons, and their
houses and property destroyed and burned; who, after the most serious appeals to
heaven, the most solemn abjuration by oath of all government connected with you,
and the most heart-felt pledges and protestations of faith to each other; and
who, after soliciting the friendship, and entering into alliances with other
nations, should at last break through all these obligations, civil and divine,
by complying with your horrid and infernal proposal. Ought we ever after to be
considered as a part of the human race? Or ought we not rather to be blotted
from the society of mankind, and become a spectacle of misery to the world? But
there is something in corruption, which, like a jaundiced eye, transfers the
color of itself to the object it looks upon, and sees every thing stained and
impure; for unless you were capable of such conduct yourselves, you would never
have supposed such a character in us. The offer fixes your infamy. It exhibits
you as a nation without faith; with whom oaths and treaties are considered as
trifles, and the breaking them as the breaking of a bubble. Regard to decency,
or to rank, might have taught you better; or pride inspired you, though virtue
could not. There is not left a step in the degradation of character to which you
can now descend; you have put your foot on the ground floor, and the key of the
dungeon is turned upon you.
That the invitation may want nothing of being a complete monster, you have
thought proper to finish it with an assertion which has no foundation, either in
fact or philosophy; and as Mr. Ferguson, your secretary, is a man of letters,
and has made civil society his study, and published a treatise on that subject,
I address this part to him.
In the close of the paragraph which I last quoted, France is styled the "natural
enemy" of England, and by way of lugging us into some strange idea, she is
styled "the late mutual and natural enemy" of both countries. I deny that she
ever was the natural enemy of either; and that there does not exist in nature
such a principle. The expression is an unmeaning barbarism, and wholly
unphilosophical, when applied to beings of the same species, let their station
in the creation be what it may. We have a perfect idea of a natural enemy when
we think of the devil, because the enmity is perpetual, unalterable and
unabateable. It admits, neither of peace, truce, or treaty; consequently the
warfare is eternal, and therefore it is natural. But man with man cannot arrange
in the same opposition. Their quarrels are accidental and equivocally created.
They become friends or enemies as the change of temper, or the cast of interest
inclines them. The Creator of man did not constitute them the natural enemy of
each other. He has not made any one order of beings so. Even wolves may quarrel,
still they herd together. If any two nations are so, then must all nations be
so, otherwise it is not nature but custom, and the offence frequently originates
with the accuser. England is as truly the natural enemy of France, as France is
of England, and perhaps more so. Separated from the rest of Europe, she has
contracted an unsocial habit of manners, and imagines in others the jealousy she
creates in herself. Never long satisfied with peace, she supposes the discontent
universal, and buoyed up with her own importance, conceives herself the only
object pointed at. The expression has been often used, and always with a
fraudulent design; for when the idea of a natural enemy is conceived, it
prevents all other inquiries, and the real cause of the quarrel is hidden in the
universality of the conceit. Men start at the notion of a natural enemy, and ask
no other question. The cry obtains credit like the alarm of a mad dog, and is
one of those kind of tricks, which, by operating on the common passions, secures
their interest through their folly.
But we, sir, are not to be thus imposed upon. We live in a large world, and have
extended our ideas beyond the limits and prejudices of an island. We hold out
the right hand of friendship to all the universe, and we conceive that there is
a sociality in the manners of France, which is much better disposed to peace and
negotiation than that of England, and until the latter becomes more civilized,
she cannot expect to live long at peace with any power. Her common language is
vulgar and offensive, and children suck in with their milk the rudiments of
insult- "The arm of Britain! The mighty arm of Britain! Britain that shakes the
earth to its center and its poles! The scourge of France! The terror of the
world! That governs with a nod, and pours down vengeance like a God." This
language neither makes a nation great or little; but it shows a savageness of
manners, and has a tendency to keep national animosity alive. The entertainments
of the stage are calculated to the same end, and almost every public exhibition
is tinctured with insult. Yet England is always in dread of France,- terrified
at the apprehension of an invasion, suspicious of being outwitted in a treaty,
and privately cringing though she is publicly offending. Let her, therefore,
reform her manners and do justice, and she will find the idea of a natural enemy
to be only a phantom of her own imagination.
Little did I think, at this period of the war, to see a proclamation which could
promise you no one useful purpose whatever, and tend only to expose you. One
would think that you were just awakened from a four years' dream, and knew
nothing of what had passed in the interval. Is this a time to be offering
pardons, or renewing the long forgotten subjects of charters and taxation? Is it
worth your while, after every force has failed you, to retreat under the shelter
of argument and persuasion? Or can you think that we, with nearly half your army
prisoners, and in alliance with France, are to be begged or threatened into
submission by a piece of paper? But as commissioners at a hundred pounds
sterling a week each, you conceive yourselves bound to do something, and the
genius of ill-fortune told you, that you must write.
For my own part, I have not put pen to paper these several months. Convinced of
our superiority by the issue of every campaign, I was inclined to hope, that
that which all the rest of the world now see, would become visible to you, and
therefore felt unwilling to ruffle your temper by fretting you with repetitions
and discoveries. There have been intervals of hesitation in your conduct, from
which it seemed a pity to disturb you, and a charity to leave you to yourselves.
You have often stopped, as if you intended to think, but your thoughts have ever
been too early or too late.
There was a time when Britain disdained to answer, or even hear a petition from
America. That time is past and she in her turn is petitioning our acceptance. We
now stand on higher ground, and offer her peace; and the time will come when
she, perhaps in vain, will ask it from us. The latter case is as probable as the
former ever was. She cannot refuse to acknowledge our independence with greater
obstinacy than she before refused to repeal her laws; and if America alone could
bring her to the one, united with France she will reduce her to the other. There
is something in obstinacy which differs from every other passion; whenever it
fails it never recovers, but either breaks like iron, or crumbles sulkily away
like a fractured arch. Most other passions have their periods of fatigue and
rest; their suffering and their cure; but obstinacy has no resource, and the
first wound is mortal. You have already begun to give it up, and you will, from
the natural construction of the vice, find yourselves both obliged and inclined
to do so.
If you look back you see nothing but loss and disgrace. If you look forward the
same scene continues, and the close is an impenetrable gloom. You may plan and
execute little mischiefs, but are they worth the expense they cost you, or will
such partial evils have any effect on the general cause? Your expedition to Egg
Harbor, will be felt at a distance like an attack upon a hen-roost, and expose
you in Europe, with a sort of childish frenzy. Is it worth while to keep an army
to protect you in writing proclamations, or to get once a year into winter
quarters? Possessing yourselves of towns is not conquest, but convenience, and
in which you will one day or other be trepanned. Your retreat from Philadelphia,
was only a timely escape, and your next expedition may be less fortunate.
It would puzzle all the politicians in the universe to conceive what you stay
for, or why you should have stayed so long. You are prosecuting a war in which
you confess you have neither object nor hope, and that conquest, could it be
effected, would not repay the charges: in the mean while the rest of your
affairs are running to ruin, and a European war kindling against you. In such a
situation, there is neither doubt nor difficulty; the first rudiments of reason
will determine the choice, for if peace can be procured with more advantages
than even a conquest can be obtained, he must be an idiot indeed that hesitates.
But you are probably buoyed up by a set of wretched mortals, who, having
deceived themselves, are cringing, with the duplicity of a spaniel, for a little
temporary bread. Those men will tell you just what you please. It is their
interest to amuse, in order to lengthen out their protection. They study to keep
you amongst them for that very purpose; and in proportion as you disregard their
advice, and grow callous to their complaints, they will stretch into
improbability, and season their flattery the higher. Characters like these are
to be found in every country, and every country will despise them.
COMMON SENSE.
PHILADELPHIA, Oct. 20, 1778.
The Crisis Number VII
by Thomas Paine
VII.
TO THE PEOPLE OF ENGLAND.
THERE are stages in the business of serious life in which to amuse is
cruel, but to deceive is to destroy; and it is of little consequence, in the
conclusion, whether men deceive themselves, or submit, by a kind of mutual
consent, to the impositions of each other. That England has long been under the
influence of delusion or mistake, needs no other proof than the unexpected and
wretched situation that she is now involved in: and so powerful has been the
influence, that no provision was ever made or thought of against the misfortune,
because the possibility of its happening was never conceived.
The general and successful resistance of America, the conquest of Burgoyne, and
a war in France, were treated in parliament as the dreams of a discontented
opposition, or a distempered imagination. They were beheld as objects unworthy
of a serious thought, and the bare intimation of them afforded the ministry a
triumph of laughter. Short triumph indeed! For everything which has been
predicted has happened, and all that was promised has failed. A long series of
politics so remarkably distinguished by a succession of misfortunes, without one
alleviating turn, must certainly have something in it systematically wrong. It
is sufficient to awaken the most credulous into suspicion, and the most
obstinate into thought. Either the means in your power are insufficient, or the
measures ill planned; either the execution has been bad, or the thing attempted
impracticable; or, to speak more emphatically, either you are not able or heaven
is not willing. For, why is it that you have not conquered us? Who, or what has
prevented you? You have had every opportunity that you could desire, and
succeeded to your utmost wish in every preparatory means. Your fleets and armies
have arrived in America without an accident. No uncommon fortune has intervened.
No foreign nation has interfered until the time which you had allotted for
victory was passed. The opposition, either in or out of parliament, neither
disconcerted your measures, retarded or diminished your force. They only
foretold your fate. Every ministerial scheme was carried with as high a hand as
if the whole nation had been unanimous. Every thing wanted was asked for, and
every thing asked for was granted.
A greater force was not within the compass of your abilities to send, and the
time you sent it was of all others the most favorable. You were then at rest
with the whole world beside. You had the range of every court in Europe
uncontradicted by us. You amused us with a tale of commissioners of peace, and
under that disguise collected a numerous army and came almost unexpectedly upon
us. The force was much greater than we looked for; and that which we had to
oppose it with, was unequal in numbers, badly armed, and poorly disciplined;
beside which, it was embodied only for a short time, and expired within a few
months after your arrival. We had governments to form; measures to concert; an
army to train, and every necessary article to import or to create. Our
non-importation scheme had exhausted our stores, and your command by sea
intercepted our supplies. We were a people unknown, and unconnected with the
political world, and strangers to the disposition of foreign powers. Could you
possibly wish for a more favorable conjunction of circumstances? Yet all these
have happened and passed away, and, as it were, left you with a laugh. There are
likewise, events of such an original nativity as can never happen again, unless
a new world should arise from the ocean.
If any thing can be a lesson to presumption, surely the circumstances of this
war will have their effect. Had Britain been defeated by any European power, her
pride would have drawn consolation from the importance of her conquerors; but in
the present case, she is excelled by those that she affected to despise, and her
own opinions retorting upon herself, become an aggravation of her disgrace.
Misfortune and experience are lost upon mankind, when they produce neither
reflection nor reformation. Evils, like poisons, have their uses, and there are
diseases which no other remedy can reach. It has been the crime and folly of
England to suppose herself invincible, and that, without acknowledging or
perceiving that a full third of her strength was drawn from the country she is
now at war with. The arm of Britain has been spoken of as the arm of the
Almighty, and she has lived of late as if she thought the whole world created
for her diversion. Her politics, instead of civilizing, has tended to brutalize
mankind, and under the vain, unmeaning title of "Defender of the Faith," she has
made war like an Indian against the religion of humanity. Her cruelties in the
East Indies will never be forgotten, and it is somewhat remarkable that the
produce of that ruined country, transported to America, should there kindle up a
war to punish the destroyer. The chain is continued, though with a mysterious
kind of uniformity both in the crime and the punishment. The latter runs
parallel with the former, and time and fate will give it a perfect illustration.
When information is withheld, ignorance becomes a reasonable excuse; and one
would charitably hope that the people of England do not encourage cruelty from
choice but from mistake. Their recluse situation, surrounded by the sea,
preserves them from the calamities of war, and keeps them in the dark as to the
conduct of their own armies. They see not, therefore they feel not. They tell
the tale that is told them and believe it, and accustomed to no other news than
their own, they receive it, stripped of its horrors and prepared for the palate
of the nation, through the channel of the London Gazette. They are made to
believe that their generals and armies differ from those of other nations, and
have nothing of rudeness or barbarity in them. They suppose them what they wish
them to be. They feel a disgrace in thinking otherwise, and naturally encourage
the belief from a partiality to themselves. There was a time when I felt the
same prejudices, and reasoned from the same errors; but experience, sad and
painful experience, has taught me better. What the conduct of former armies was,
I know not, but what the conduct of the present is, I well know. It is low,
cruel, indolent and profligate; and had the people of America no other cause for
separation than what the army has occasioned, that alone is cause sufficient.
The field of politics in England is far more extensive than that of news. Men
have a right to reason for themselves, and though they cannot contradict the
intelligence in the London Gazette, they may frame upon it what sentiments they
please. But the misfortune is, that a general ignorance has prevailed over the
whole nation respecting America. The ministry and the minority have both been
wrong. The former was always so, the latter only lately so. Politics, to be
executively right, must have a unity of means and time, and a defect in either
overthrows the whole. The ministry rejected the plans of the minority while they
were practicable, and joined in them when they became impracticable. From wrong
measures they got into wrong time, and have now completed the circle of
absurdity by closing it upon themselves.
I happened to come to America a few months before the breaking out of
hostilities. I found the disposition of the people such, that they might have
been led by a thread and governed by a reed. Their suspicion was quick and
penetrating, but their attachment to Britain was obstinate, and it was at that
time a kind of treason to speak against it. They disliked the ministry, but they
esteemed the nation. Their idea of grievance operated without resentment, and
their single object was reconciliation. Bad as I believed the ministry to be, I
never conceived them capable of a measure so rash and wicked as the commencing
of hostilities; much less did I imagine the nation would encourage it. I viewed
the dispute as a kind of law-suit, in which I supposed the parties would find a
way either to decide or settle it. I had no thoughts of independence or of arms.
The world could not then have persuaded me that I should be either a soldier or
an author. If I had any talents for either, they were buried in me, and might
ever have continued so, had not the necessity of the times dragged and driven
them into action. I had formed my plan of life, and conceiving myself happy,
wished every body else so. But when the country, into which I had just set my
foot, was set on fire about my ears, it was time to stir. It was time for every
man to stir. Those who had been long settled had something to defend; those who
had just come had something to pursue; and the call and the concern was equal
and universal. For in a country where all men were once adventurers, the
difference of a few years in their arrival could make none in their right.
The breaking out of hostilities opened a new suspicion in the politics of
America, which, though at that time very rare, has since been proved to be very
right. What I allude to is, "a secret and fixed determination in the British
Cabinet to annex America to the crown of England as a conquered country." If
this be taken as the object, then the whole line of conduct pursued by the
ministry, though rash in its origin and ruinous in its consequences, is
nevertheless uniform and consistent in its parts. It applies to every case and
resolves every difficulty. But if taxation, or any thing else, be taken in its
room, there is no proportion between the object and the charge. Nothing but the
whole soil and property of the country can be placed as a possible equivalent
against the millions which the ministry expended. No taxes raised in America
could possibly repay it. A revenue of two millions sterling a year would not
discharge the sum and interest accumulated thereon, in twenty years.
Reconciliation never appears to have been the wish or the object of the
administration; they looked on conquest as certain and infallible, and, under
that persuasion, sought to drive the Americans into what they might style a
general rebellion, and then, crushing them with arms in their hands, reap the
rich harvest of a general confiscation, and silence them for ever. The
dependents at court were too numerous to be provided for in England. The market
for plunder in the East Indies was over; and the profligacy of government
required that a new mine should be opened, and that mine could be no other than
America, conquered and forfeited. They had no where else to go. Every other
channel was drained; and extravagance, with the thirst of a drunkard, was gaping
for supplies.
If the ministry deny this to have been their plan, it becomes them to explain
what was their plan. For either they have abused us in coveting property they
never labored for, or they have abused you in expending an amazing sum upon an
incompetent object. Taxation, as I mentioned before, could never be worth the
charge of obtaining it by arms; and any kind of formal obedience which America
could have made, would have weighed with the lightness of a laugh against such a
load of expense. It is therefore most probable that the ministry will at last
justify their policy by their dishonesty, and openly declare, that their
original design was conquest: and, in this case, it well becomes the people of
England to consider how far the nation would have been benefited by the success.
In a general view, there are few conquests that repay the charge of making them,
and mankind are pretty well convinced that it can never be worth their while to
go to war for profit's sake. If they are made war upon, their country invaded,
or their existence at stake, it is their duty to defend and preserve themselves,
but in every other light, and from every other cause, is war inglorious and
detestable. But to return to the case in question-
When conquests are made of foreign countries, it is supposed that the commerce
and dominion of the country which made them are extended. But this could neither
be the object nor the consequence of the present war. You enjoyed the whole
commerce before. It could receive no possible addition by a conquest, but on the
contrary, must diminish as the inhabitants were reduced in numbers and wealth.
You had the same dominion over the country which you used to have, and had no
complaint to make against her for breach of any part of the contract between you
or her, or contending against any established custom, commercial, political or
territorial. The country and commerce were both your own when you began to
conquer, in the same manner and form as they had been your own a hundred years
before. Nations have sometimes been induced to make conquests for the sake of
reducing the power of their enemies, or bringing it to a balance with their own.
But this could be no part of your plan. No foreign authority was claimed here,
neither was any such authority suspected by you, or acknowledged or imagined by
us. What then, in the name of heaven, could you go to war for? Or what chance
could you possibly have in the event, but either to hold the same country which
you held before, and that in a much worse condition, or to lose, with an amazing
expense, what you might have retained without a farthing of charges?
War never can be the interest of a trading nation, any more than quarrelling can
be profitable to a man in business. But to make war with those who trade with
us, is like setting a bull-dog upon a customer at the shop-door. The least
degree of common sense shows the madness of the latter, and it will apply with
the same force of conviction to the former. Piratical nations, having neither
commerce or commodities of their own to lose, may make war upon all the world,
and lucratively find their account in it; but it is quite otherwise with
Britain: for, besides the stoppage of trade in time of war, she exposes more of
her own property to be lost, than she has the chance of taking from others. Some
ministerial gentlemen in parliament have mentioned the greatness of her trade as
an apology for the greatness of her loss. This is miserable politics indeed!
Because it ought to have been given as a reason for her not engaging in a war at
first. The coast of America commands the West India trade almost as effectually
as the coast of Africa does that of the Straits; and England can no more carry
on the former without the consent of America, than she can the latter without a
Mediterranean pass.
In whatever light the war with America is considered upon commercial principles,
it is evidently the interest of the people of England not to support it; and why
it has been supported so long, against the clearest demonstrations of truth and
national advantage, is, to me, and must be to all the reasonable world, a matter
of astonishment. Perhaps it may be said that I live in America, and write this
from interest. To this I reply, that my principle is universal. My attachment is
to all the world, and not to any particular part, and if what I advance is
right, no matter where or who it comes from. We have given the proclamation of
your commissioners a currency in our newspapers, and I have no doubt you will
give this a place in yours. To oblige and be obliged is fair.
Before I dismiss this part of my address, I shall mention one more circumstance
in which I think the people of England have been equally mistaken: and then
proceed to other matters.
There is such an idea existing in the world, as that of national honor, and
this, falsely understood, is oftentimes the cause of war. In a Christian and
philosophical sense, mankind seem to have stood still at individual
civilization, and to retain as nations all the original rudeness of nature.
Peace by treaty is only a cessation of violence for a reformation of sentiment.
It is a substitute for a principle that is wanting and ever will be wanting till
the idea of national honor be rightly understood. As individuals we profess
ourselves Christians, but as nations we are heathens, Romans, and what not. I
remember the late Admiral Saunders declaring in the House of Commons, and that
in the time of peace, "That the city of Madrid laid in ashes was not a
sufficient atonement for the Spaniards taking off the rudder of an English sloop
of war." I do not ask whether this is Christianity or morality, I ask whether it
is decency? whether it is proper language for a nation to use? In private life
we call it by the plain name of bullying, and the elevation of rank cannot alter
its character. It is, I think, exceedingly easy to define what ought to be
understood by national honor; for that which is the best character for an
individual is the best character for a nation; and wherever the latter exceeds
or falls beneath the former, there is a departure from the line of true
greatness.
I have thrown out this observation with a design of applying it to Great
Britain. Her ideas of national honor seem devoid of that benevolence of heart,
that universal expansion of philanthropy, and that triumph over the rage of
vulgar prejudice, without which man is inferior to himself, and a companion of
common animals. To know who she shall regard or dislike, she asks what country
they are of, what religion they profess, and what property they enjoy. Her idea
of national honor seems to consist in national insult, and that to be a great
people, is to be neither a Christian, a philosopher, or a gentleman, but to
threaten with the rudeness of a bear, and to devour with the ferocity of a lion.
This perhaps may sound harsh and uncourtly, but it is too true, and the more is
the pity.
I mention this only as her general character. But towards America she has
observed no character at all; and destroyed by her conduct what she assumed in
her title. She set out with the title of parent, or mother country. The
association of ideas which naturally accompany this expression, are filled with
everything that is fond, tender and forbearing. They have an energy peculiar to
themselves, and, overlooking the accidental attachment of common affections,
apply with infinite softness to the first feelings of the heart. It is a
political term which every mother can feel the force of, and every child can
judge of. It needs no painting of mine to set it off, for nature only can do it
justice.
But has any part of your conduct to America corresponded with the title you set
up? If in your general national character you are unpolished and severe, in this
you are inconsistent and unnatural, and you must have exceeding false notions of
national honor to suppose that the world can admire a want of humanity or that
national honor depends on the violence of resentment, the inflexibility of
temper, or the vengeance of execution.
I would willingly convince you, and that with as much temper as the times will
suffer me to do, that as you opposed your own interest by quarrelling with us,
so likewise your national honor, rightly conceived and understood, was no ways
called upon to enter into a war with America; had you studied true greatness of
heart, the first and fairest ornament of mankind, you would have acted directly
contrary to all that you have done, and the world would have ascribed it to a
generous cause. Besides which, you had (though with the assistance of this
country) secured a powerful name by the last war. You were known and dreaded
abroad; and it would have been wise in you to have suffered the world to have
slept undisturbed under that idea. It was to you a force existing without
expense. It produced to you all the advantages of real power; and you were
stronger through the universality of that charm, than any future fleets and
armies may probably make you. Your greatness was so secured and interwoven with
your silence that you ought never to have awakened mankind, and had nothing to
do but to be quiet. Had you been true politicians you would have seen all this,
and continued to draw from the magic of a name, the force and authority of a
nation.
Unwise as you were in breaking the charm, you were still more unwise in the
manner of doing it. Samson only told the secret, but you have performed the
operation; you have shaven your own head, and wantonly thrown away the locks.
America was the hair from which the charm was drawn that infatuated the world.
You ought to have quarrelled with no power; but with her upon no account. You
had nothing to fear from any condescension you might make. You might have
humored her, even if there had been no justice in her claims, without any risk
to your reputation; for Europe, fascinated by your fame, would have ascribed it
to your benevolence, and America, intoxicated by the grant, would have slumbered
in her fetters.
But this method of studying the progress of the passions, in order to ascertain
the probable conduct of mankind, is a philosophy in politics which those who
preside at St. James's have no conception of. They know no other influence than
corruption and reckon all their probabilities from precedent. A new case is to
them a new world, and while they are seeking for a parallel they get lost. The
talents of Lord Mansfield can be estimated at best no higher than those of a
sophist. He understands the subtleties but not the elegance of nature; and by
continually viewing mankind through the cold medium of the law, never thinks of
penetrating into the warmer region of the mind. As for Lord North, it is his
happiness to have in him more philosophy than sentiment, for he bears flogging
like a top, and sleeps the better for it. His punishment becomes his support,
for while he suffers the lash for his sins, he keeps himself up by twirling
about. In politics, he is a good arithmetician, and in every thing else nothing
at all.
There is one circumstance which comes so much within Lord North's province as a
financier, that I am surprised it should escape him, which is, the different
abilities of the two countries in supporting the expense; for, strange as it may
seem, England is not a match for America in this particular. By a curious kind
of revolution in accounts, the people of England seem to mistake their poverty
for their riches; that is, they reckon their national debt as a part of their
national wealth. They make the same kind of error which a man would do, who
after mortgaging his estate, should add the money borrowed, to the full value of
the estate, in order to count up his worth, and in this case he would conceive
that he got rich by running into debt. Just thus it is with England. The
government owed at the beginning of this war one hundred and thirty-five
millions sterling, and though the individuals to whom it was due had a right to
reckon their shares as so much private property, yet to the nation collectively
it was so much poverty. There are as effectual limits to public debts as to
private ones, for when once the money borrowed is so great as to require the
whole yearly revenue to discharge the interest thereon, there is an end to
further borrowing; in the same manner as when the interest of a man's debts
amounts to the yearly income of his estate, there is an end to his credit. This
is nearly the case with England, the interest of her present debt being at least
equal to one half of her yearly revenue, so that out of ten millions annually
collected by taxes, she has but five that she can call her own.
The very reverse of this was the case with America; she began the war without
any debt upon her, and in order to carry it on, she neither raised money by
taxes, nor borrowed it upon interest, but created it; and her situation at this
time continues so much the reverse of yours that taxing would make her rich,
whereas it would make you poor. When we shall have sunk the sum which we have
created, we shall then be out of debt, be just as rich as when we began, and all
the while we are doing it shall feel no difference, because the value will rise
as the quantity decreases.
There was not a country in the world so capable of bearing the expense of a war
as America; not only because she was not in debt when she began, but because the
country is young and capable of infinite improvement, and has an almost
boundless tract of new lands in store; whereas England has got to her extent of
age and growth, and has not unoccupied land or property in reserve. The one is
like a young heir coming to a large improvable estate; the other like an old man
whose chances are over, and his estate mortgaged for half its worth.
In the second number of the Crisis, which I find has been republished in
England, I endeavored to set forth the impracticability of conquering America. I
stated every case, that I conceived could possibly happen, and ventured to
predict its consequences. As my conclusions were drawn not artfully, but
naturally, they have all proved to be true. I was upon the spot; knew the
politics of America, her strength and resources, and by a train of services, the
best in my power to render, was honored with the friendship of the congress, the
army and the people. I considered the cause a just one. I know and feel it a
just one, and under that confidence never made my own profit or loss an object.
My endeavor was to have the matter well understood on both sides, and I
conceived myself tendering a general service, by setting forth to the one the
impossibility of being conquered, and to the other the impossibility of
conquering. Most of the arguments made use of by the ministry for supporting the
war, are the very arguments that ought to have been used against supporting it;
and the plans, by which they thought to conquer, are the very plans in which
they were sure to be defeated. They have taken every thing up at the wrong end.
Their ignorance is astonishing, and were you in my situation you would see it.
They may, perhaps, have your confidence, but I am persuaded that they would make
very indifferent members of Congress. I know what England is, and what America
is, and from the compound of knowledge, am better enabled to judge of the issue
than what the king or any of his ministers can be.
In this number I have endeavored to show the ill policy and disadvantages of the
war. I believe many of my remarks are new. Those which are not so, I have
studied to improve and place in a manner that may be clear and striking. Your
failure is, I am persuaded, as certain as fate. America is above your reach. She
is at least your equal in the world, and her independence neither rests upon
your consent, nor can it be prevented by your arms. In short, you spend your
substance in vain, and impoverish yourselves without a hope.
But suppose you had conquered America, what advantages, collectively or
individually, as merchants, manufacturers, or conquerors, could you have looked
for? This is an object you seemed never to have attended to. Listening for the
sound of victory, and led away by the frenzy of arms, you neglected to reckon
either the cost or the consequences. You must all pay towards the expense; the
poorest among you must bear his share, and it is both your right and your duty
to weigh seriously the matter. Had America been conquered, she might have been
parcelled out in grants to the favorites at court, but no share of it would have
fallen to you. Your taxes would not have been lessened, because she would have
been in no condition to have paid any towards your relief. We are rich by
contrivance of our own, which would have ceased as soon as you became masters.
Our paper money will be of no use in England, and silver and gold we have none.
In the last war you made many conquests, but were any of your taxes lessened
thereby? On the contrary, were you not taxed to pay for the charge of making
them, and has not the same been the case in every war?
To the Parliament I wish to address myself in a more particular manner. They
appear to have supposed themselves partners in the chase, and to have hunted
with the lion from an expectation of a right in the booty; but in this it is
most probable they would, as legislators, have been disappointed. The case is
quite a new one, and many unforeseen difficulties would have arisen thereon. The
Parliament claimed a legislative right over America, and the war originated from
that pretence. But the army is supposed to belong to the crown, and if America
had been conquered through their means, the claim of the legislature would have
been suffocated in the conquest. Ceded, or conquered, countries are supposed to
be out of the authority of Parliament. Taxation is exercised over them by
prerogative and not by law. It was attempted to be done in the Grenadas a few
years ago, and the only reason why it was not done was because the crown had
made a prior relinquishment of its claim. Therefore, Parliament have been all
this while supporting measures for the establishment of their authority, in the
issue of which, they would have been triumphed over by the prerogative. This
might have opened a new and interesting opposition between the Parliament and
the crown. The crown would have said that it conquered for itself, and that to
conquer for Parliament was an unknown case. The Parliament might have replied,
that America not being a foreign country, but a country in rebellion, could not
be said to be conquered, but reduced; and thus continued their claim by
disowning the term. The crown might have rejoined, that however America might be
considered at first, she became foreign at last by a declaration of
independence, and a treaty with France; and that her case being, by that treaty,
put within the law of nations, was out of the law of Parliament, who might have
maintained, that as their claim over America had never been surrendered, so
neither could it be taken away. The crown might have insisted, that though the
claim of Parliament could not be taken away, yet, being an inferior, it might be
superseded; and that, whether the claim was withdrawn from the object, or the
object taken from the claim, the same separation ensued; and that America being
subdued after a treaty with France, was to all intents and purposes a regal
conquest, and of course the sole property of the king. The Parliament, as the
legal delegates of the people, might have contended against the term "inferior,"
and rested the case upon the antiquity of power, and this would have brought on
a set of very interesting and rational questions.
1st, What is the original
fountain of power and honor in any country?
2d, Whether the prerogative does not belong to the people?
3d, Whether there is any such thing as the English constitution?
4th, Of what use is the crown to the people?
5th, Whether he who invented a crown was not an enemy to mankind?
6th, Whether it is not a shame for a man to spend a million a year and
do no good for it, and whether the money might not be better applied?
7th, Whether such a man is not better dead than alive?
8th, Whether a Congress, constituted like that of America, is not the
most happy and consistent form of government in the world?- With a number of
others of the same import.
In short, the contention about the dividend might have
distracted the nation; for nothing is more common than to agree in the conquest
and quarrel for the prize; therefore it is, perhaps, a happy circumstance, that
our successes have prevented the dispute.
If the Parliament had been thrown out in their claim, which it is most probable
they would, the nation likewise would have been thrown out in their expectation;
for as the taxes would have been laid on by the crown without the Parliament,
the revenue arising therefrom, if any could have arisen, would not have gone
into the exchequer, but into the privy purse, and so far from lessening the
taxes, would not even have been added to them, but served only as pocket money
to the crown. The more I reflect on this matter, the more I am satisfied at the
blindness and ill policy of my countrymen, whose wisdom seems to operate without
discernment, and their strength without an object.
To the great bulwark of the nation, I mean the mercantile and manufacturing part
thereof, I likewise present my address. It is your interest to see America an
independent, and not a conquered country. If conquered, she is ruined; and if
ruined, poor; consequently the trade will be a trifle, and her credit doubtful.
If independent, she flourishes, and from her flourishing must your profits
arise. It matters nothing to you who governs America, if your manufactures find
a consumption there. Some articles will consequently be obtained from other
places, and it is right that they should; but the demand for others will
increase, by the great influx of inhabitants which a state of independence and
peace will occasion, and in the final event you may be enriched. The commerce of
America is perfectly free, and ever will be so. She will consign away no part of
it to any nation. She has not to her friends, and certainly will not to her
enemies; though it is probable that your narrow-minded politicians, thinking to
please you thereby, may some time or other unnecessarily make such a proposal.
Trade flourishes best when it is free, and it is weak policy to attempt to
fetter it. Her treaty with France is on the most liberal and generous
principles, and the French, in their conduct towards her, have proved themselves
to be philosophers, politicians, and gentlemen.
To the ministry I likewise address myself. You, gentlemen, have studied the ruin
of your country, from which it is not within your abilities to rescue her. Your
attempts to recover her are as ridiculous as your plans which involved her are
detestable. The commissioners, being about to depart, will probably bring you
this, and with it my sixth number, addressed to them; and in so doing they carry
back more Common Sense than they brought, and you likewise will have more than
when you sent them.
Having thus addressed you severally, I conclude by addressing you collectively.
It is a long lane that has no turning. A period of sixteen years of misconduct
and misfortune, is certainly long enough for any one nation to suffer under; and
upon a supposition that war is not declared between France and you, I beg to
place a line of conduct before you that will easily lead you out of all your
troubles. It has been hinted before, and cannot be too much attended to.
Suppose America had remained unknown to Europe till the present year, and that
Mr. Banks and Dr. Solander, in another voyage round the world, had made the
first discovery of her, in the same condition that she is now in, of arts, arms,
numbers, and civilization. What, I ask, in that case, would have been your
conduct towards her? For that will point out what it ought to be now. The
problems and their solutions are equal, and the right line of the one is the
parallel of the other. The question takes in every circumstance that can
possibly arise. It reduces politics to a simple thought, and is moreover a mode
of investigation, in which, while you are studying your interest the simplicity
of the case will cheat you into good temper. You have nothing to do but to
suppose that you have found America, and she appears found to your hand, and
while in the joy of your heart you stand still to admire her, the path of
politics rises straight before you.
Were I disposed to paint a contrast, I could easily set off what you have done
in the present case, against what you would have done in that case, and by
justly opposing them, conclude a picture that would make you blush. But, as,
when any of the prouder passions are hurt, it is much better philosophy to let a
man slip into a good temper than to attack him in a bad one, for that reason,
therefore, I only state the case, and leave you to reflect upon it.
To go a little back into politics, it will be found that the true interest of
Britain lay in proposing and promoting the independence of America immediately
after the last peace; for the expense which Britain had then incurred by
defending America as her own dominions, ought to have shown her the policy and
necessity of changing the style of the country, as the best probable method of
preventing future wars and expense, and the only method by which she could hold
the commerce without the charge of sovereignty. Besides which, the title which
she assumed, of parent country, led to, and pointed out the propriety, wisdom
and advantage of a separation; for, as in private life, children grow into men,
and by setting up for themselves, extend and secure the interest of the whole
family, so in the settlement of colonies large enough to admit of maturity, the
same policy should be pursued, and the same consequences would follow. Nothing
hurts the affections both of parents and children so much, as living too closely
connected, and keeping up the distinction too long. Domineering will not do over
those, who, by a progress in life, have become equal in rank to their parents,
that is, when they have families of their own; and though they may conceive
themselves the subjects of their advice, will not suppose them the objects of
their government. I do not, by drawing this parallel, mean to admit the title of
parent country, because, if it is due any where, it is due to Europe
collectively, and the first settlers from England were driven here by
persecution. I mean only to introduce the term for the sake of policy and to
show from your title the line of your interest.
When you saw the state of strength and opulence, and that by her own industry,
which America arrived at, you ought to have advised her to set up for herself,
and proposed an alliance of interest with her, and in so doing you would have
drawn, and that at her own expense, more real advantage, and more military
supplies and assistance, both of ships and men, than from any weak and wrangling
government that you could exercise over her. In short, had you studied only the
domestic politics of a family, you would have learned how to govern the state;
but, instead of this easy and natural line, you flew out into every thing which
was wild and outrageous, till, by following the passion and stupidity of the
pilot, you wrecked the vessel within sight of the shore.
Having shown what you ought to have done, I now proceed to show why it was not
done. The caterpillar circle of the court had an interest to pursue, distinct
from, and opposed to yours; for though by the independence of America and an
alliance therewith, the trade would have continued, if not increased, as in many
articles neither country can go to a better market, and though by defending and
protecting herself, she would have been no expense to you, and consequently your
national charges would have decreased, and your taxes might have been
proportionably lessened thereby; yet the striking off so many places from the
court calendar was put in opposition to the interest of the nation. The loss of
thirteen government ships, with their appendages, here and in England, is a
shocking sound in the ear of a hungry courtier. Your present king and ministry
will be the ruin of you; and you had better risk a revolution and call a
Congress, than be thus led on from madness to despair, and from despair to ruin.
America has set you the example, and you may follow it and be free.
I now come to the last part, a war with France. This is what no man in his
senses will advise you to, and all good men would wish to prevent. Whether
France will declare war against you, is not for me in this place to mention, or
to hint, even if I knew it; but it must be madness in you to do it first. The
matter is come now to a full crisis, and peace is easy if willingly set about.
Whatever you may think, France has behaved handsomely to you. She would have
been unjust to herself to have acted otherwise than she did; and having accepted
our offer of alliance she gave you genteel notice of it. There was nothing in
her conduct reserved or indelicate, and while she announced her determination to
support her treaty, she left you to give the first offence. America, on her
part, has exhibited a character of firmness to the world. Unprepared and
unarmed, without form or government, she, singly opposed a nation that
domineered over half the globe. The greatness of the deed demands respect; and
though you may feel resentment, you are compelled both to wonder and admire.
Here I rest my arguments and finish my address. Such as it is, it is a gift, and
you are welcome. It was always my design to dedicate a Crisis to you, when the
time should come that would properly make it a Crisis; and when, likewise, I
should catch myself in a temper to write it, and suppose you in a condition to
read it. That time has now arrived, and with it the opportunity for conveyance.
For the commissioners- poor commissioners! having proclaimed, that "yet forty
days and Nineveh shall be overthrown," have waited out the date, and,
discontented with their God, are returning to their gourd. And all the harm I
wish them is, that it may not wither about their ears, and that they may not
make their exit in the belly of a whale.
COMMON SENSE.
PHILADELPHIA, Nov. 21, 1778.
P.S.- Though in the tranquillity of my mind I have concluded with a laugh, yet I
have something to mention to the commissioners, which, to them, is serious and
worthy their attention. Their authority is derived from an Act of Parliament,
which likewise describes and limits their official powers. Their commission,
therefore, is only a recital, and personal investiture, of those powers, or a
nomination and description of the persons who are to execute them. Had it
contained any thing contrary to, or gone beyond the line of, the written law
from which it is derived, and by which it is bound, it would, by the English
constitution, have been treason in the crown, and the king been subject to an
impeachment. He dared not, therefore, put in his commission what you have put in
your proclamation, that is, he dared not have authorised you in that commission
to burn and destroy any thing in America. You are both in the act and in the
commission styled commissioners for restoring peace, and the methods for doing
it are there pointed out. Your last proclamation is signed by you as
commissioners under that act. You make Parliament the patron of its contents.
Yet, in the body of it, you insert matters contrary both to the spirit and
letter of the act, and what likewise your king dared not have put in his
commission to you. The state of things in England, gentlemen, is too ticklish
for you to run hazards. You are accountable to Parliament for the execution of
that act according to the letter of it. Your heads may pay for breaking it, for
you certainly have broke it by exceeding it. And as a friend, who would wish you
to escape the paw of the lion, as well as the belly of the whale, I civilly hint
to you, to keep within compass.
Sir Harry Clinton, strictly speaking, is as accountable as the rest; for though
a general, he is likewise a commissioner, acting under a superior authority. His
first obedience is due to the act; and his plea of being a general, will not and
cannot clear him as a commissioner, for that would suppose the crown, in its
single capacity, to have a power of dispensing with an Act of Parliament. Your
situation, gentlemen, is nice and critical, and the more so because England is
unsettled. Take heed! Remember the times of Charles the First! For Laud and
Stafford fell by trusting to a hope like yours.
Having thus shown you the danger of your proclamation, I now show you the folly
of it. The means contradict your design: you threaten to lay waste, in order to
render America a useless acquisition of alliance to France. I reply, that the
more destruction you commit (if you could do it) the more valuable to France you
make that alliance. You can destroy only houses and goods; and by so doing you
increase our demand upon her for materials and merchandise; for the wants of one
nation, provided it has freedom and credit, naturally produce riches to the
other; and, as you can neither ruin the land nor prevent the vegetation, you
would increase the exportation of our produce in payment, which would be to her
a new fund of wealth. In short, had you cast about for a plan on purpose to
enrich your enemies, you could not have hit upon a better.
C. S.
The Crisis Number VIII
by Thomas Paine
VIII.
ADDRESS TO THE PEOPLE OF ENGLAND.
"TRUSTING (says the king of England in his speech of November last,) in
the divine providence, and in the justice of my cause, I am firmly resolved to
prosecute the war with vigor, and to make every exertion in order to compel our
enemies to equitable terms of peace and accommodation." To this declaration the
United States of America, and the confederated powers of Europe will reply, if
Britain will have war, she shall have enough of it.
Five years have nearly elapsed since the commencement of hostilities, and every
campaign, by a gradual decay, has lessened your ability to conquer, without
producing a serious thought on your condition or your fate. Like a prodigal
lingering in an habitual consumption, you feel the relics of life, and mistake
them for recovery. New schemes, like new medicines, have administered fresh
hopes, and prolonged the disease instead of curing it. A change of generals,
like a change of physicians, served only to keep the flattery alive, and furnish
new pretences for new extravagance.
"Can Britain fail?"* has been proudly asked at the undertaking of every
enterprise; and that "whatever she wills is fate,"*(2) has been given with the
solemnity of prophetic confidence; and though the question has been constantly
replied to by disappointment, and the prediction falsified by misfortune, yet
still the insult continued, and your catalogue of national evils increased
therewith. Eager to persuade the world of her power, she considered destruction
as the minister of greatness, and conceived that the glory of a nation like that
of an [American] Indian, lay in the number of its scalps and the miseries which
it inflicts.
* Whitehead's New Year's ode for 1776.
*(2) Ode at the installation of Lord North, for Chancellor of the University
of Oxford.
Fire, sword and want, as far as the arms of Britain could
extend them, have been spread with wanton cruelty along the coast of America;
and while you, remote from the scene of suffering, had nothing to lose and as
little to dread, the information reached you like a tale of antiquity, in which
the distance of time defaces the conception, and changes the severest sorrows
into conversable amusement.
This makes the second paper, addressed perhaps in vain, to the people of
England. That advice should be taken wherever example has failed, or precept be
regarded where warning is ridiculed, is like a picture of hope resting on
despair: but when time shall stamp with universal currency the facts you have
long encountered with a laugh, and the irresistible evidence of accumulated
losses, like the handwriting on the wall, shall add terror to distress, you will
then, in a conflict of suffering, learn to sympathize with others by feeling for
yourselves.
The triumphant appearance of the combined fleets in the channel and at your
harbor's mouth, and the expedition of Captain Paul Jones, on the western and
eastern coasts of England and Scotland, will, by placing you in the condition of
an endangered country, read to you a stronger lecture on the calamities of
invasion, and bring to your minds a truer picture of promiscuous distress, than
the most finished rhetoric can describe or the keenest imagination conceive.
Hitherto you have experienced the expenses, but nothing of the miseries of war.
Your disappointments have been accompanied with no immediate suffering, and your
losses came to you only by intelligence. Like fire at a distance you heard not
even the cry; you felt not the danger, you saw not the confusion. To you every
thing has been foreign but the taxes to support it. You knew not what it was to
be alarmed at midnight with an armed enemy in the streets. You were strangers to
the distressing scene of a family in flight, and to the thousand restless cares
and tender sorrows that incessantly arose. To see women and children wandering
in the severity of winter, with the broken remains of a well furnished house,
and seeking shelter in every crib and hut, were matters that you had no
conception of. You knew not what it was to stand by and see your goods chopped
for fuel, and your beds ripped to pieces to make packages for plunder. The
misery of others, like a tempestuous night, added to the pleasures of your own
security. You even enjoyed the storm, by contemplating the difference of
conditions, and that which carried sorrow into the breasts of thousands served
but to heighten in you a species of tranquil pride. Yet these are but the
fainter sufferings of war, when compared with carnage and slaughter, the
miseries of a military hospital, or a town in flames.
The people of America, by anticipating distress, had fortified their minds
against every species you could inflict. They had resolved to abandon their
homes, to resign them to destruction, and to seek new settlements rather than
submit. Thus familiarized to misfortune, before it arrived, they bore their
portion with the less regret: the justness of their cause was a continual source
of consolation, and the hope of final victory, which never left them, served to
lighten the load and sweeten the cup allotted them to drink.
But when their troubles shall become yours, and invasion be transferred upon the
invaders, you will have neither their extended wilderness to fly to, their cause
to comfort you, nor their hope to rest upon. Distress with them was sharpened by
no self-reflection. They had not brought it on themselves. On the contrary, they
had by every proceeding endeavored to avoid it, and had descended even below the
mark of congressional character, to prevent a war. The national honor or the
advantages of independence were matters which, at the commencement of the
dispute, they had never studied, and it was only at the last moment that the
measure was resolved on. Thus circumstanced, they naturally and conscientiously
felt a dependence upon providence. They had a clear pretension to it, and had
they failed therein, infidelity had gained a triumph.
But your condition is the reverse of theirs. Every thing you suffer you have
sought: nay, had you created mischiefs on purpose to inherit them, you could not
have secured your title by a firmer deed. The world awakens with no pity it your
complaints. You felt none for others; you deserve none for yourselves. Nature
does not interest herself in cases like yours, but, on the contrary, turns from
them with dislike, and abandons them to punishment. You may now present
memorials to what court you please, but so far as America is the object, none
will listen. The policy of Europe, and the propensity there in every mind to
curb insulting ambition, and bring cruelty to judgment, are unitedly against
you; and where nature and interest reinforce with each other, the compact is too
intimate to be dissolved.
Make but the case of others your own, and your own theirs, and you will then
have a clear idea of the whole. Had France acted towards her colonies as you
have done, you would have branded her with every epithet of abhorrence; and had
you, like her, stepped in to succor a struggling people, all Europe must have
echoed with your own applauses. But entangled in the passion of dispute you see
it not as you ought, and form opinions thereon which suit with no interest but
your own. You wonder that America does not rise in union with you to impose on
herself a portion of your taxes and reduce herself to unconditional submission.
You are amazed that the southern powers of Europe do not assist you in
conquering a country which is afterwards to be turned against themselves; and
that the northern ones do not contribute to reinstate you in America who already
enjoy the market for naval stores by the separation. You seem surprised that
Holland does not pour in her succors to maintain you mistress of the seas, when
her own commerce is suffering by your act of navigation; or that any country
should study her own interest while yours is on the carpet.
Such excesses of passionate folly, and unjust as well as unwise resentment, have
driven you on, like Pharaoh, to unpitied miseries, and while the importance of
the quarrel shall perpetuate your disgrace, the flag of America will carry it
round the world. The natural feelings of every rational being will be against
you, and wherever the story shall be told, you will have neither excuse nor
consolation left. With an unsparing hand, and an insatiable mind, you have
desolated the world, to gain dominion and to lose it; and while, in a frenzy of
avarice and ambition, the east and the west are doomed to tributary bondage, you
rapidly earned destruction as the wages of a nation.
At the thoughts of a war at home, every man amongst you ought to tremble. The
prospect is far more dreadful there than in America. Here the party that was
against the measures of the continent were in general composed of a kind of
neutrals, who added strength to neither army. There does not exist a being so
devoid of sense and sentiment as to covet "unconditional submission," and
therefore no man in America could be with you in principle. Several might from a
cowardice of mind, prefer it to the hardships and dangers of opposing it; but
the same disposition that gave them such a choice, unfitted them to act either
for or against us. But England is rent into parties, with equal shares of
resolution. The principle which produced the war divides the nation. Their
animosities are in the highest state of fermentation, and both sides, by a call
of the militia, are in arms. No human foresight can discern, no conclusion can
be formed, what turn a war might take, if once set on foot by an invasion. She
is not now in a fit disposition to make a common cause of her own affairs, and
having no conquests to hope for abroad, and nothing but expenses arising at
home, her everything is staked upon a defensive combat, and the further she goes
the worse she is off.
There are situations that a nation may be in, in which peace or war, abstracted
from every other consideration, may be politically right or wrong. When nothing
can be lost by a war, but what must be lost without it, war is then the policy
of that country; and such was the situation of America at the commencement of
hostilities: but when no security can be gained by a war, but what may be
accomplished by a peace, the case becomes reversed, and such now is the
situation of England.
That America is beyond the reach of conquest, is a fact which experience has
shown and time confirmed, and this admitted, what, I ask, is now the object of
contention? If there be any honor in pursuing self-destruction with inflexible
passion- if national suicide be the perfection of national glory, you may, with
all the pride of criminal happiness, expire unenvied and unrivalled. But when
the tumult of war shall cease, and the tempest of present passions be succeeded
by calm reflection, or when those, who, surviving its fury, shall inherit from
you a legacy of debts and misfortunes, when the yearly revenue scarcely be able
to discharge the interest of the one, and no possible remedy be left for the
other, ideas far different from the present will arise, and embitter the
remembrance of former follies. A mind disarmed of its rage feels no pleasure in
contemplating a frantic quarrel. Sickness of thought, the sure consequence of
conduct like yours, leaves no ability for enjoyment, no relish for resentment;
and though, like a man in a fit, you feel not the injury of the struggle, nor
distinguish between strength and disease, the weakness will nevertheless be
proportioned to the violence, and the sense of pain increase with the recovery.
To what persons or to whose system of politics you owe your present state of
wretchedness, is a matter of total indifference to America. They have
contributed, however unwillingly, to set her above themselves, and she, in the
tranquillity of conquest, resigns the inquiry. The case now is not so properly
who began the war, as who continues it. That there are men in all countries to
whom a state of war is a mine of wealth, is a fact never to be doubted.
Characters like these naturally breed in the putrefaction of distempered times,
and after fattening on the disease, they perish with it, or, impregnated with
the stench, retreat into obscurity.
But there are several erroneous notions to which you likewise owe a share of
your misfortunes, and which, if continued, will only increase your trouble and
your losses. An opinion hangs about the gentlemen of the minority, that America
would relish measures under their administration, which she would not from the
present cabinet. On this rock Lord Chatham would have split had he gained the
helm, and several of his survivors are steering the same course. Such
distinctions in the infancy of the argument had some degree of foundation, but
they now serve no other purpose than to lengthen out a war, in which the limits
of a dispute, being fixed by the fate of arms, and guaranteed by treaties, are
not to be changed or altered by trivial circumstances.
The ministry, and many of the minority, sacrifice their time in disputing on a
question with which they have nothing to do, namely, whether America shall be
independent or not. Whereas the only question that can come under their
determination is, whether they will accede to it or not. They confound a
military question with a political one, and undertake to supply by a vote what
they lost by a battle. Say she shall not be independent, and it will signify as
much as if they voted against a decree of fate, or say that she shall, and she
will be no more independent than before. Questions which, when determined,
cannot be executed, serve only to show the folly of dispute and the weakness of
disputants.
From a long habit of calling America your own, you suppose her governed by the
same prejudices and conceits which govern yourselves. Because you have set up a
particular denomination of religion to the exclusion of all others, you imagine
she must do the same, and because you, with an unsociable narrowness of mind,
have cherished enmity against France and Spain, you suppose her alliance must be
defective in friendship. Copying her notions of the world from you, she formerly
thought as you instructed, but now feeling herself free, and the prejudice
removed, she thinks and acts upon a different system. It frequently happens that
in proportion as we are taught to dislike persons and countries, not knowing
why, we feel an ardor of esteem upon the removal of the mistake: it seems as if
something was to be made amends for, and we eagerly give in to every office of
friendship, to atone for the injury of the error. But, perhaps, there is
something in the extent of countries, which, among the generality of people,
insensibly communicates extension of the mind. The soul of an islander, in its
native state, seems bounded by the foggy confines of the water's edge, and all
beyond affords to him matters only for profit or curiosity, not for friendship.
His island is to him his world, and fixed to that, his every thing centers in
it; while those who are inhabitants of a continent, by casting their eye over a
larger field, take in likewise a larger intellectual circuit, and thus
approaching nearer to an acquaintance with the universe, their atmosphere of
thought is extended, and their liberality fills a wider space. In short, our
minds seem to be measured by countries when we are men, as they are by places
when we are children, and until something happens to disentangle us from the
prejudice, we serve under it without perceiving it.
In addition to this, it may be remarked, that men who study any universal
science, the principles of which are universally known, or admitted, and applied
without distinction to the common benefit of all countries, obtain thereby a
larger share of philanthropy than those who only study national arts and
improvements. Natural philosophy, mathematics and astronomy, carry the mind from
the country to the creation, and give it a fitness suited to the extent. It was
not Newton's honor, neither could it be his pride, that he was an Englishman,
but that he was a philosopher, the heavens had liberated him from the prejudices
of an island, and science had expanded his soul as boundless as his studies.
COMMON SENSE.
PHILADELPHIA, March, 1780.
The Crisis Number IX
by Thomas Paine
IX.
HAD America pursued her advantages with half the spirit that she resisted
her misfortunes, she would, before now, have been a conquering and a peaceful
people; but lulled in the lap of soft tranquillity, she rested on her hopes, and
adversity only has convulsed her into action. Whether subtlety or sincerity at
the close of the last year induced the enemy to an appearance for peace, is a
point not material to know; it is sufficient that we see the effects it has had
on our politics, and that we sternly rise to resent the delusion.
The war, on the part of America, has been a war of natural feelings. Brave in
distress; serene in conquest; drowsy while at rest; and in every situation
generously disposed to peace; a dangerous calm, and a most heightened zeal have,
as circumstances varied, succeeded each other. Every passion but that of despair
has been called to a tour of duty; and so mistaken has been the enemy, of our
abilities and disposition, that when she supposed us conquered, we rose the
conquerors. The extensiveness of the United States, and the variety of their
resources; the universality of their cause, the quick operation of their
feelings, and the similarity of their sentiments, have, in every trying
situation, produced a something, which, favored by providence, and pursued with
ardor, has accomplished in an instant the business of a campaign. We have never
deliberately sought victory, but snatched it; and bravely undone in an hour the
blotted operations of a season.
The reported fate of Charleston, like the misfortunes of 1776, has at last
called forth a spirit, and kindled up a flame, which perhaps no other event
could have produced. If the enemy has circulated a falsehood, they have unwisely
aggravated us into life, and if they have told us the truth, they have
unintentionally done us a service. We were returning with folded arms from the
fatigues of war, and thinking and sitting leisurely down to enjoy repose. The
dependence that has been put upon Charleston threw a drowsiness over America. We
looked on the business done- the conflict over- the matter settled- or that all
which remained unfinished would follow of itself. In this state of dangerous
relaxation, exposed to the poisonous infusions of the enemy, and having no
common danger to attract our attention, we were extinguishing, by stages, the
ardor we began with, and surrendering by piece-meal the virtue that defended us.
Afflicting as the loss of Charleston may be, yet if it universally rouse us from
the slumber of twelve months past, and renew in us the spirit of former days, it
will produce an advantage more important than its loss. America ever is what she
thinks herself to be. Governed by sentiment, and acting her own mind, she
becomes, as she pleases, the victor or the victim.
It is not the conquest of towns, nor the accidental capture of garrisons, that
can reduce a country so extensive as this. The sufferings of one part can never
be relieved by the exertions of another, and there is no situation the enemy can
be placed in that does not afford to us the same advantages which he seeks
himself. By dividing his force, he leaves every post attackable. It is a mode of
war that carries with it a confession of weakness, and goes on the principle of
distress rather than conquest.
The decline of the enemy is visible, not only in their operations, but in their
plans; Charleston originally made but a secondary object in the system of
attack, and it is now become their principal one, because they have not been
able to succeed elsewhere. It would have carried a cowardly appearance in Europe
had they formed their grand expedition, in 1776, against a part of the continent
where there was no army, or not a sufficient one to oppose them; but failing
year after year in their impressions here, and to the eastward and northward,
they deserted their capital design, and prudently contenting themselves with
what they can get, give a flourish of honor to conceal disgrace.
But this piece-meal work is not conquering the continent. It is a discredit in
them to attempt it, and in us to suffer it. It is now full time to put an end to
a war of aggravations, which, on one side, has no possible object, and on the
other has every inducement which honor, interest, safety and happiness can
inspire. If we suffer them much longer to remain among us, we shall become as
bad as themselves. An association of vice will reduce us more than the sword. A
nation hardened in the practice of iniquity knows better how to profit by it,
than a young country newly corrupted. We are not a match for them in the line of
advantageous guilt, nor they for us on the principles which we bravely set out
with. Our first days were our days of honor. They have marked the character of
America wherever the story of her wars are told; and convinced of this, we have
nothing to do but wisely and unitedly to tread the well known track. The
progress of a war is often as ruinous to individuals, as the issue of it is to a
nation; and it is not only necessary that our forces be such that we be
conquerors in the end, but that by timely exertions we be secure in the interim.
The present campaign will afford an opportunity which has never presented itself
before, and the preparations for it are equally necessary, whether Charleston
stand or fall. Suppose the first, it is in that case only a failure of the
enemy, not a defeat. All the conquest that a besieged town can hope for, is, not
to be conquered; and compelling an enemy to raise the siege, is to the besieged
a victory. But there must be a probability amounting almost to a certainty, that
would justify a garrison marching out to attack a retreat. Therefore should
Charleston not be taken, and the enemy abandon the siege, every other part of
the continent should prepare to meet them; and, on the contrary, should it be
taken, the same preparations are necessary to balance the loss, and put
ourselves in a position to co-operate with our allies, immediately on their
arrival.
We are not now fighting our battles alone, as we were in 1776; England, from a
malicious disposition to America, has not only not declared war against France
and Spain, but, the better to prosecute her passions here, has afforded those
powers no military object, and avoids them, to distress us. She will suffer her
West India islands to be overrun by France, and her southern settlements to be
taken by Spain, rather than quit the object that gratifies her revenge. This
conduct, on the part of Britain, has pointed out the propriety of France sending
a naval and land force to co-operate with America on the spot. Their arrival
cannot be very distant, nor the ravages of the enemy long. The recruiting the
army, and procuring the supplies, are the two things most necessary to be
accomplished, and a capture of either of the enemy's divisions will restore to
America peace and plenty.
At a crisis, big, like the present, with expectation and events, the whole
country is called to unanimity and exertion. Not an ability ought now to sleep,
that can produce but a mite to the general good, nor even a whisper to pass that
militates against it. The necessity of the case, and the importance of the
consequences, admit no delay from a friend, no apology from an enemy. To spare
now, would be the height of extravagance, and to consult present ease, would be
to sacrifice it perhaps forever.
America, rich in patriotism and produce, can want neither men nor supplies, when
a serious necessity calls them forth. The slow operation of taxes, owing to the
extensiveness of collection, and their depreciated value before they arrived in
the treasury, have, in many instances, thrown a burden upon government, which
has been artfully interpreted by the enemy into a general decline throughout the
country. Yet this, inconvenient as it may at first appear, is not only
remediable, but may be turned to an immediate advantage; for it makes no real
difference, whether a certain number of men, or company of militia (and in this
country every man is a militia-man), are directed by law to send a recruit at
their own expense, or whether a tax is laid on them for that purpose, and the
man hired by government afterwards. The first, if there is any difference, is
both cheapest and best, because it saves the expense which would attend
collecting it as a tax, and brings the man sooner into the field than the modes
of recruiting formerly used; and, on this principle, a law has been passed in
this state, for recruiting two men from each company of militia, which will add
upwards of a thousand to the force of the country.
But the flame which has broken forth in this city since the report from New
York, of the loss of Charleston, not only does honor to the place, but, like the
blaze of 1776, will kindle into action the scattered sparks throughout America.
The valor of a country may be learned by the bravery of its soldiery, and the
general cast of its inhabitants, but confidence of success is best discovered by
the active measures pursued by men of property; and when the spirit of
enterprise becomes so universal as to act at once on all ranks of men, a war may
then, and not till then, be styled truly popular.
In 1776, the ardor of the enterprising part was considerably checked by the real
revolt of some, and the coolness of others. But in the present case, there is a
firmness in the substance and property of the country to the public cause. An
association has been entered into by the merchants, tradesmen, and principal
inhabitants of the city [Philadelphia], to receive and support the new state
money at the value of gold and silver; a measure which, while it does them
honor, will likewise contribute to their interest, by rendering the operations
of the campaign convenient and effectual.
Nor has the spirit of exertion stopped here. A voluntary subscription is
likewise begun, to raise a fund of hard money, to be given as bounties, to fill
up the full quota of the Pennsylvania line. It has been the remark of the enemy,
that every thing in America has been done by the force of government; but when
she sees individuals throwing in their voluntary aid, and facilitating the
public measures in concert with the established powers of the country, it will
convince her that the cause of America stands not on the will of a few but on
the broad foundation of property and popularity.
Thus aided and thus supported, disaffection will decline, and the withered head
of tyranny expire in America. The ravages of the enemy will be short and
limited, and like all their former ones, will produce a victory over themselves.
COMMON SENSE.
PHILADELPHIA, June 9, 1780.
P. S. At the time of writing this number of the Crisis, the loss of Charleston,
though believed by some, was more confidently disbelieved by others. But there
ought to be no longer a doubt upon the matter. Charleston is gone, and I believe
for the want of a sufficient supply of provisions. The man that does not now
feel for the honor of the best and noblest cause that ever a country engaged in,
and exert himself accordingly, is no longer worthy of a peaceable residence
among a people determined to be free.
C. S.
The Crisis Extraordinary
by Thomas Paine
THE CRISIS EXTRAORDINARY
ON THE SUBJECT OF TAXATION.
IT IS impossible to sit down and think seriously on the affairs of
America, but the original principles upon which she resisted, and the glow and
ardor which they inspired, will occur like the undefaced remembrance of a lovely
scene. To trace over in imagination the purity of the cause, the voluntary
sacrifices that were made to support it, and all the various turnings of the war
in its defence, is at once both paying and receiving respect. The principles
deserve to be remembered, and to remember them rightly is repossessing them. In
this indulgence of generous recollection, we become gainers by what we seem to
give, and the more we bestow the richer we become.
So extensively right was the ground on which America proceeded, that it not only
took in every just and liberal sentiment which could impress the heart, but made
it the direct interest of every class and order of men to defend the country.
The war, on the part of Britain, was originally a war of covetousness. The
sordid and not the splendid passions gave it being. The fertile fields and
prosperous infancy of America appeared to her as mines for tributary wealth. She
viewed the hive, and disregarding the industry that had enriched it, thirsted
for the honey. But in the present stage of her affairs, the violence of temper
is added to the rage of avarice; and therefore, that which at the first setting
out proceeded from purity of principle and public interest, is now heightened by
all the obligations of necessity; for it requires but little knowledge of human
nature to discern what would be the consequence, were America again reduced to
the subjection of Britain. Uncontrolled power, in the hands of an incensed,
imperious, and rapacious conqueror, is an engine of dreadful execution, and woe
be to that country over which it can be exercised. The names of Whig and Tory
would then be sunk in the general term of rebel, and the oppression, whatever it
might be, would, with very few instances of exception, light equally on all.
Britain did not go to war with America for the sake of dominion, because she was
then in possession; neither was it for the extension of trade and commerce,
because she had monopolized the whole, and the country had yielded to it;
neither was it to extinguish what she might call rebellion, because before she
began no resistance existed. It could then be from no other motive than avarice,
or a design of establishing, in the first instance, the same taxes in America as
are paid in England (which, as I shall presently show, are above eleven times
heavier than the taxes we now pay for the present year, 1780) or, in the second
instance, to confiscate the whole property of America, in case of resistance and
conquest of the latter, of which she had then no doubt.
I shall now proceed to show what the taxes in England are, and what the yearly
expense of the present war is to her- what the taxes of this country amount to,
and what the annual expense of defending it effectually will be to us; and shall
endeavor concisely to point out the cause of our difficulties, and the
advantages on one side, and the consequences on the other, in case we do, or do
not, put ourselves in an effectual state of defence. I mean to be open, candid,
and sincere. I see a universal wish to expel the enemy from the country, a
murmuring because the war is not carried on with more vigor, and my intention is
to show, as shortly as possible, both the reason and the remedy.
The number of souls in England (exclusive of Scotland and Ireland) is seven
millions,* and the number of souls in America is three millions.
* This is taking the highest number that the people of
England have been, or can be rated at.
The amount of taxes in England (exclusive of Scotland and
Ireland) was, before the present war commenced, eleven millions six hundred and
forty-two thousand six hundred and fifty-three pounds sterling; which, on an
average, is no less a sum than one pound thirteen shillings and three-pence
sterling per head per annum, men, women, and children; besides county taxes,
taxes for the support of the poor, and a tenth of all the produce of the earth
for the support of the bishops and clergy.* Nearly five millions of this sum
went annually to pay the interest of the national debt, contracted by former
wars, and the remaining sum of six millions six hundred and forty-two thousand
six hundred pounds was applied to defray the yearly expense of government, the
peace establishment of the army and navy, placemen, pensioners, etc.;
consequently the whole of the enormous taxes being thus appropriated, she had
nothing to spare out of them towards defraying the expenses of the present war
or any other. Yet had she not been in debt at the beginning of the war, as we
were not, and, like us, had only a land and not a naval war to carry on, her
then revenue of eleven millions and a half pounds sterling would have defrayed
all her annual expenses of war and government within each year.
* The following is taken from Dr. Price's state of the taxes of England.
An account of the money drawn from the public by taxes, annually, being the
medium of three years before the year 1776.
Amount of customs in England 2,528,275 L.
Amount of the excise in England 4,649,892
Land tax at 3s. 1,300,000
Land tax at 1s. in the pound 450,000
Salt duties 218,739
Duties on stamps, cards, dice, advertisements,
bonds, leases, indentures, newspapers,
almanacks, etc. 280,788
Duties on houses and windows 385,369
Post office, seizures, wine licences, hackney
coaches, etc. 250,000
Annual profits from lotteries 150,000
Expense of collecting the excise in England 297,887
Expense of collecting the customs in England 468,703
Interest of loans on the land tax at 4s. expenses
of collection, militia, etc. 250,000
Perquisites, etc. to custom-house officers, &c.
supposed 250,000
Expense of collecting the salt duties in England
10 1/2 per cent. 27,000
Bounties on fish exported 18,000
Expense of collecting the duties on stamps, cards,
advertisements, etc. at 5 and 1/4 per cent. 18,000
Total 11,642,653 L.
But this not being the case with her, she is obliged to borrow
about ten millions pounds sterling, yearly, to prosecute the war that she is now
engaged in, (this year she borrowed twelve) and lay on new taxes to discharge
the interest; allowing that the present war has cost her only fifty millions
sterling, the interest thereon, at five per cent., will be two millions and an
half; therefore the amount of her taxes now must be fourteen millions, which on
an average is no less than forty shillings sterling, per head, men, women and
children, throughout the nation. Now as this expense of fifty millions was
borrowed on the hopes of conquering America, and as it was avarice which first
induced her to commence the war, how truly wretched and deplorable would the
condition of this country be, were she, by her own remissness, to suffer an
enemy of such a disposition, and so circumstanced, to reduce her to subjection.
I now proceed to the revenues of America.
I have already stated the number of souls in America to be three millions, and
by a calculation that I have made, which I have every reason to believe is
sufficiently correct, the whole expense of the war, and the support of the
several governments, may be defrayed for two million pounds sterling annually;
which, on an average, is thirteen shillings and four pence per head, men, women,
and children, and the peace establishment at the end of the war will be but
three quarters of a million, or five shillings sterling per head. Now, throwing
out of the question everything of honor, principle, happiness, freedom, and
reputation in the world, and taking it up on the simple ground of interest, I
put the following case:
Suppose Britain was to conquer America, and, as a conqueror, was to lay her
under no other conditions than to pay the same proportion towards her annual
revenue which the people of England pay: our share, in that case, would be six
million pounds sterling yearly. Can it then be a question, whether it is best to
raise two millions to defend the country, and govern it ourselves, and only
three quarters of a million afterwards, or pay six millions to have it
conquered, and let the enemy govern it?
Can it be supposed that conquerors would choose to put themselves in a worse
condition than what they granted to the conquered? In England, the tax on rum is
five shillings and one penny sterling per gallon, which is one silver dollar and
fourteen coppers. Now would it not be laughable to imagine, that after the
expense they have been at, they would let either Whig or Tory drink it cheaper
than themselves? Coffee, which is so inconsiderable an article of consumption
and support here, is there loaded with a duty which makes the price between five
and six shillings per pound, and a penalty of fifty pounds sterling on any
person detected in roasting it in his own house. There is scarcely a necessary
of life that you can eat, drink, wear, or enjoy, that is not there loaded with a
tax; even the light from heaven is only permitted to shine into their dwellings
by paying eighteen pence sterling per window annually; and the humblest drink of
life, small beer, cannot there be purchased without a tax of nearly two coppers
per gallon, besides a heavy tax upon the malt, and another on the hops before it
is brewed, exclusive of a land-tax on the earth which produces them. In short,
the condition of that country, in point of taxation, is so oppressive, the
number of her poor so great, and the extravagance and rapaciousness of the court
so enormous, that, were they to effect a conquest of America, it is then only
that the distresses of America would begin. Neither would it signify anything to
a man whether he be Whig or Tory. The people of England, and the ministry of
that country, know us by no such distinctions. What they want is clear, solid
revenue, and the modes which they would take to procure it, would operate alike
on all. Their manner of reasoning would be short, because they would naturally
infer, that if we were able to carry on a war of five or six years against them,
we were able to pay the same taxes which they do.
I have already stated that the expense of conducting the present war, and the
government of the several states, may be done for two millions sterling, and the
establishment in the time of peace, for three quarters of a million.*
* I have made the calculations in sterling, because it is
a rate generally known in all the states, and because, likewise, it admits of
an easy comparison between our expenses to support the war, and those of the
enemy. Four silver dollars and a half is one pound sterling, and three pence
over.
As to navy matters, they flourish so well, and are so well
attended to by individuals, that I think it consistent on every principle of
real use and economy, to turn the navy into hard money (keeping only three or
four packets) and apply it to the service of the army. We shall not have a ship
the less; the use of them, and the benefit from them, will be greatly increased,
and their expense saved. We are now allied with a formidable naval power, from
whom we derive the assistance of a navy. And the line in which we can prosecute
the war, so as to reduce the common enemy and benefit the alliance most
effectually, will be by attending closely to the land service.
I estimate the charge of keeping up and maintaining an army, officering them,
and all expenses included, sufficient for the defence of the country, to be
equal to the expense of forty thousand men at thirty pounds sterling per head,
which is one million two hundred thousand pounds.
I likewise allow four hundred thousand pounds for continental expenses at home
and abroad.
And four hundred thousand pounds for the support of the several state
governments- the amount will then be:
| |
For the army |
|
1,200,000 |
|
L. |
| |
Continental expenses at home and abroad
|
|
400,000 |
| |
Government of the several states
|
|
400,000 |
| |
Total |
|
2,000,000 |
|
L. |
I take the proportion of this state, Pennsylvania, to be an
eighth part of the thirteen United States; the quota then for us to raise will
be two hundred and fifty thousand pounds sterling; two hundred thousand of which
will be our share for the support and pay of the army, and continental expenses
at home and abroad, and fifty thousand pounds for the support of the state
government.
In order to gain an idea of the proportion in which the raising such a sum will
fall, I make the following calculation:
Pennsylvania contains three hundred and seventy-five thousand inhabitants, men,
women and children; which is likewise an eighth of the number of inhabitants of
the whole United States: therefore, two hundred and fifty thousand pounds
sterling to be raised among three hundred and seventy-five thousand persons, is,
on an average, thirteen shillings and four pence per head, per annum, or
something more than one shilling sterling per month. And our proportion of three
quarters of a million for the government of the country, in time of peace, will
be ninety-three thousand seven hundred and fifty pounds sterling; fifty thousand
of which will be for the government expenses of the state, and forty-three
thousand seven hundred and fifty pounds for continental expenses at home and
abroad.
The peace establishment then will, on an average, be five shillings sterling per
head. Whereas, was England now to stop, and the war cease, her peace
establishment would continue the same as it is now, viz. forty shillings per
head; therefore was our taxes necessary for carrying on the war, as much per
head as hers now is, and the difference to be only whether we should, at the end
of the war, pay at the rate of five shillings per head, or forty shillings per
head, the case needs no thinking of. But as we can securely defend and keep the
country for one third less than what our burden would be if it was conquered,
and support the governments afterwards for one eighth of what Britain would levy
on us, and could I find a miser whose heart never felt the emotion of a spark of
principle, even that man, uninfluenced by every love but the love of money, and
capable of no attachment but to his interest, would and must, from the frugality
which governs him, contribute to the defence of the country, or he ceases to be
a miser and becomes an idiot. But when we take in with it every thing that can
ornament mankind; when the line of our interest becomes the line of our
happiness; when all that can cheer and animate the heart, when a sense of honor,
fame, character, at home and abroad, are interwoven not only with the security
but the increase of property, there exists not a man in America, unless he be an
hired emissary, who does not see that his good is connected with keeping up a
sufficient defence.
I do not imagine that an instance can be produced in the world, of a country
putting herself to such an amazing charge to conquer and enslave another, as
Britain has done. The sum is too great for her to think of with any tolerable
degree of temper; and when we consider the burden she sustains, as well as the
disposition she has shown, it would be the height of folly in us to suppose that
she would not reimburse herself by the most rapid means, had she America once
more within her power. With such an oppression of expense, what would an empty
conquest be to her! What relief under such circumstances could she derive from a
victory without a prize? It was money, it was revenue she first went to war for,
and nothing but that would satisfy her. It is not the nature of avarice to be
satisfied with any thing else. Every passion that acts upon mankind has a
peculiar mode of operation. Many of them are temporary and fluctuating; they
admit of cessation and variety. But avarice is a fixed, uniform passion. It
neither abates of its vigor nor changes its object; and the reason why it does
not, is founded in the nature of things, for wealth has not a rival where
avarice is a ruling passion. One beauty may excel another, and extinguish from
the mind of man the pictured remembrance of a former one: but wealth is the
phoenix of avarice, and therefore it cannot seek a new object, because there is
not another in the world.
I now pass on to show the value of the present taxes, and compare them with the
annual expense; but this I shall preface with a few explanatory remarks.
There are two distinct things which make the payment of taxes difficult; the one
is the large and real value of the sum to be paid, and the other is the scarcity
of the thing in which the payment is to be made; and although these appear to be
one and the same, they are in several instances riot only different, but the
difficulty springs from different causes.
Suppose a tax to be laid equal to one half of what a man's yearly income is,
such a tax could not be paid, because the property could not be spared; and on
the other hand, suppose a very trifling tax was laid, to be collected in pearls,
such a tax likewise could not be paid, because they could not be had. Now any
person may see that these are distinct cases, and the latter of them is a
representation of our own.
That the difficulty cannot proceed from the former, that is, from the real value
or weight of the tax, is evident at the first view to any person who will
consider it.
The amount of the quota of taxes for this State for the year, 1780, (and so in
proportion for every other State,) is twenty millions of dollars, which at
seventy for one, is but sixty-four thousand two hundred and eighty pounds three
shillings sterling, and on an average, is no more than three shillings and five
pence sterling per head, per annum, per man, woman and child, or threepence
two-fifths per head per month. Now here is a clear, positive fact, that cannot
be contradicted, and which proves that the difficulty cannot be in the weight of
the tax, for in itself it is a trifle, and far from being adequate to our quota
of the expense of the war. The quit-rents of one penny sterling per acre on only
one half of the state, come to upwards of fifty thousand pounds, which is almost
as much as all the taxes of the present year, and as those quit-rents made no
part of the taxes then paid, and are now discontinued, the quantity of money
drawn for public-service this year, exclusive of the militia fines, which I
shall take notice of in the process of this work, is less than what was paid and
payable in any year preceding the revolution, and since the last war; what I
mean is, that the quit-rents and taxes taken together came to a larger sum then,
than the present taxes without the quit-rents do now.
My intention by these arguments and calculations is to place the difficulty to
the right cause, and show that it does not proceed from the weight or worth of
the tax, but from the scarcity of the medium in which it is paid; and to
illustrate this point still further, I shall now show, that if the tax of twenty
millions of dollars was of four times the real value it now is, or nearly so,
which would be about two hundred and fifty thousand pounds sterling, and would
be our full quota, this sum would have been raised with more ease, and have been
less felt, than the present sum of only sixty-four thousand two hundred and
eighty pounds.
The convenience or inconvenience of paying a tax in money arises from the
quantity of money that can be spared out of trade.
When the emissions stopped, the continent was left in possession of two hundred
millions of dollars, perhaps as equally dispersed as it was possible for trade
to do it. And as no more was to be issued, the rise or fall of prices could
neither increase nor diminish the quantity. It therefore remained the same
through all the fluctuations of trade and exchange.
Now had the exchange stood at twenty for one, which was the rate Congress
calculated upon when they arranged the quota of the several states, the latter
end of last year, trade would have been carried on for nearly four times less
money than it is now, and consequently the twenty millions would have been
spared with much greater ease, and when collected would have been of almost four
times the value that they now are. And on the other hand, was the depreciation
to be ninety or one hundred for one, the quantity required for trade would be
more than at sixty or seventy for one, and though the value of them would be
less, the difficulty of sparing the money out of trade would be greater. And on
these facts and arguments I rest the matter, to prove that it is not the want of
property, but the scarcity of the medium by which the proportion of property for
taxation is to be measured out, that makes the embarrassment which we lie under.
There is not money enough, and, what is equally as true, the people will not let
there be money enough.
While I am on the subject of the currency, I shall offer one remark which will
appear true to everybody, and can be accounted for by nobody, which is, that the
better the times were, the worse the money grew; and the worse the times were,
the better the money stood. It never depreciated by any advantage obtained by
the enemy. The troubles of 1776, and the loss of Philadelphia in 1777, made no
sensible impression on it, and every one knows that the surrender of Charleston
did not produce the least alteration in the rate of exchange, which, for long
before, and for more than three months after, stood at sixty for one. It seems
as if the certainty of its being our own, made us careless of its value, and
that the most distant thoughts of losing it made us hug it the closer, like
something we were loth to part with; or that we depreciate it for our pastime,
which, when called to seriousness by the enemy, we leave off to renew again at
our leisure. In short, our good luck seems to break us, and our bad makes us
whole.
Passing on from this digression, I shall now endeavor to bring into one view the
several parts which I have already stated, and form thereon some propositions,
and conclude.
I have placed before the reader, the average tax per head, paid by the people of
England; which is forty shillings sterling.
And I have shown the rate on an average per head, which will defray all the
expenses of the war to us, and support the several governments without running
the country into debt, which is thirteen shillings and four pence.
I have shown what the peace establishment may be conducted for, viz., an eighth
part of what it would be, if under the government of Britain.
And I have likewise shown what the average per head of the present taxes is,
namely, three shillings and fivepence sterling, or threepence two-fifths per
month; and that their whole yearly value, in sterling, is only sixty-four
thousand two hundred and eighty pounds. Whereas our quota, to keep the payments
equal with the expenses, is two hundred and fifty thousand pounds. Consequently,
there is a deficiency of one hundred and eighty-five thousand seven hundred and
twenty pounds, and the same proportion of defect, according to the several
quotas, happens in every other state. And this defect is the cause why the army
has been so indifferently fed, clothed and paid. It is the cause, likewise, of
the nerveless state of the campaign, and the insecurity of the country. Now, if
a tax equal to thirteen and fourpence per head, will remove all these
difficulties, and make people secure in their homes, leave them to follow the
business of their stores and farms unmolested, and not only drive out but keep
out the enemy from the country; and if the neglect of raising this sum will let
them in, and produce the evils which might be prevented- on which side, I ask,
does the wisdom, interest and policy lie? Or, rather, would it not be an insult
to reason, to put the question? The sum, when proportioned out according to the
several abilities of the people, can hurt no one, but an inroad from the enemy
ruins hundreds of families.
Look at the destruction done in this city [Philadelphia]. The many houses
totally destroyed, and others damaged; the waste of fences in the country round
it, besides the plunder of furniture, forage, and provisions. I do not suppose
that half a million sterling would reinstate the sufferers; and, does this, I
ask, bear any proportion to the expense that would make us secure? The damage,
on an average, is at least ten pounds sterling per head, which is as much as
thirteen shillings and fourpence per head comes to for fifteen years. The same
has happened on the frontiers, and in the Jerseys, New York, and other places
where the enemy has been- Carolina and Georgia are likewise suffering the same
fate.
That the people generally do not understand the insufficiency of the taxes to
carry on the war, is evident, not only from common observation, but from the
construction of several petitions which were presented to the Assembly of this
state, against the recommendation of Congress of the 18th of March last, for
taking up and funding the present currency at forty to one, and issuing new
money in its stead. The prayer of the petition was, that the currency might be
appreciated by taxes (meaning the present taxes) and that part of the taxes be
applied to the support of the army, if the army could not be otherwise
supported. Now it could not have been possible for such a petition to have been
presented, had the petitioners known, that so far from part of the taxes being
sufficient for the support of the whole of them falls three-fourths short of the
year's expenses.
Before I proceed to propose methods by which a sufficiency of money may be
raised, I shall take a short view of the general state of the country.
Notwithstanding the weight of the war, the ravages of the enemy, and the
obstructions she has thrown in the way of trade and commerce, so soon does a
young country outgrow misfortune, that America has already surmounted many that
heavily oppressed her. For the first year or two of the war, we were shut up
within our ports, scarce venturing to look towards the ocean. Now our rivers are
beautified with large and valuable vessels, our stores filled with merchandise,
and the produce of the country has a ready market, and an advantageous price.
Gold and silver, that for a while seemed to have retreated again within the
bowels of the earth, have once more risen into circulation, and every day adds
new strength to trade, commerce and agriculture. In a pamphlet, written by Sir
John Dalrymple, and dispersed in America in the year 1775, he asserted that two
twenty-gun ships, nay, says he, tenders of those ships, stationed between
Albermarle sound and Chesapeake bay, would shut up the trade of America for 600
miles. How little did Sir John Dalrymple know of the abilities of America!
While under the government of Britain, the trade of this country was loaded with
restrictions. It was only a few foreign ports which we were allowed to sail to.
Now it is otherwise; and allowing that the quantity of trade is but half what it
was before the war, the case must show the vast advantage of an open trade,
because the present quantity under her restrictions could not support itself;
from which I infer, that if half the quantity without the restrictions can bear
itself up nearly, if not quite, as well as the whole when subject to them, how
prosperous must the condition of America be when the whole shall return open
with all the world. By the trade I do not mean the employment of a merchant
only, but the whole interest and business of the country taken collectively.
It is not so much my intention, by this publication, to propose particular plans
for raising money, as it is to show the necessity and the advantages to be
derived from it. My principal design is to form the disposition of the people to
the measures which I am fully persuaded it is their interest and duty to adopt,
and which need no other force to accomplish them than the force of being felt.
But as every hint may be useful, I shall throw out a sketch, and leave others to
make such improvements upon it as to them may appear reasonable.
The annual sum wanted is two millions, and the average rate in which it falls,
is thirteen shillings and fourpence per head.
Suppose, then, that we raise half the sum and sixty thousand pounds over. The
average rate thereof will be seven shillings per head.
In this case we shall have half the supply that we want, and an annual fund of
sixty thousand pounds whereon to borrow the other million; because sixty
thousand pounds is the interest of a million at six per cent.; and if at the end
of another year we should be obliged, by the continuance of the war, to borrow
another million, the taxes will be increased to seven shillings and sixpence;
and thus for every million borrowed, an additional tax, equal to sixpence per
head, must be levied.
The sum to be raised next year will be one million and sixty thousand pounds:
one half of which I would propose should be raised by duties on imported goods,
and prize goods, and the other half by a tax on landed property and houses, or
such other means as each state may devise.
But as the duties on imports and prize goods must be the same in all the states,
therefore the rate per cent., or what other form the duty shall be laid, must be
ascertained and regulated by Congress, and ingrafted in that form into the law
of each state; and the monies arising therefrom carried into the treasury of
each state. The duties to be paid in gold or silver.
There are many reasons why a duty on imports is the most convenient duty or tax
that can be collected; one of which is, because the whole is payable in a few
places in a country, and it likewise operates with the greatest ease and
equality, because as every one pays in proportion to what he consumes, so people
in general consume in proportion to what they can afford; and therefore the tax
is regulated by the abilities which every man supposes himself to have, or in
other words, every man becomes his own assessor, and pays by a little at a time,
when it suits him to buy. Besides, it is a tax which people may pay or let alone
by not consuming the articles; and though the alternative may have no influence
on their conduct, the power of choosing is an agreeable thing to the mind. For
my own part, it would be a satisfaction to me was there a duty on all sorts of
liquors during the war, as in my idea of things it would be an addition to the
pleasures of society to know, that when the health of the army goes round, a few
drops, from every glass becomes theirs. How often have I heard an emphatical
wish, almost accompanied by a tear, "Oh, that our poor fellows in the field had
some of this!" Why then need we suffer under a fruitless sympathy, when there is
a way to enjoy both the wish and the entertainment at once.
But the great national policy of putting a duty upon imports is, that it either
keeps the foreign trade in our own hands, or draws something for the defence of
the country from every foreigner who participates in it with us.
Thus much for the first half of the taxes, and as each state will best devise
means to raise the other half, I shall confine my remarks to the resources of
this state.
The quota, then, of this state, of one million and sixty thousand pounds, will
be one hundred and thirty-three thousand two hundred and fifty pounds, the half
of which is sixty-six thousand six hundred and twenty-five pounds; and supposing
one fourth part of Pennsylvania inhabited, then a tax of one bushel of wheat on
every twenty acres of land, one with another, would produce the sum, and all the
present taxes to cease. Whereas, the tithes of the bishops and clergy in
England, exclusive of the taxes, are upwards of half a bushel of wheat on every
single acre of land, good and bad, throughout the nation.
In the former part of this paper, I mentioned the militia fines, but reserved
speaking of the matter, which I shall now do. The ground I shall put it upon is,
that two millions sterling a year will support a sufficient army, and all the
expenses of war and government, without having recourse to the inconvenient
method of continually calling men from their employments, which, of all others,
is the most expensive and the least substantial. I consider the revenues created
by taxes as the first and principal thing, and fines only as secondary and
accidental things. It was not the intention of the militia law to apply the
fines to anything else but the support of the militia, neither do they produce
any revenue to the state, yet these fines amount to more than all the taxes: for
taking the muster-roll to be sixty thousand men, the fine on forty thousand who
may not attend, will be sixty thousand pounds sterling, and those who muster,
will give up a portion of time equal to half that sum, and if the eight classes
should be called within the year, and one third turn out, the fine on the
remaining forty thousand would amount to seventy-two millions of dollars,
besides the fifteen shillings on every hundred pounds of property, and the
charge of seven and a half per cent. for collecting, in certain instances which,
on the whole, would be upwards of two hundred and fifty thousand pounds
sterling.
Now if those very fines disable the country from raising a sufficient revenue
without producing an equivalent advantage, would it not be for the ease and
interest of all parties to increase the revenue, in the manner I have proposed,
or any better, if a better can be devised, and cease the operation of the fines?
I would still keep the militia as an organized body of men, and should there be
a real necessity to call them forth, pay them out of the proper revenues of the
state, and increase the taxes a third or fourth per cent. on those who do not
attend. My limits will not allow me to go further into this matter, which I
shall therefore close with this remark; that fines are, of all modes of revenue,
the most unsuited to the minds of a free country. When a man pays a tax, he
knows that the public necessity requires it, and therefore feels a pride in
discharging his duty; but a fine seems an atonement for neglect of duty, and of
consequence is paid with discredit, and frequently levied with severity.
I have now only one subject more to speak of, with which I shall conclude, which
is, the resolve of Congress of the 18th of March last, for taking up and funding
the present currency at forty for one, and issuing new money in its stead.
Every one knows that I am not the flatterer of Congress, but in this instance
they are right; and if that measure is supported, the currency will acquire a
value, which, without it, it will not. But this is not all: it will give relief
to the finances until such time as they can be properly arranged, and save the
country from being immediately doubled taxed under the present mode. In short,
support that measure, and it will support you.
I have now waded through a tedious course of difficult business, and over an
untrodden path. The subject, on every point in which it could be viewed, was
entangled with perplexities, and enveloped in obscurity, yet such are the
resources of America, that she wants nothing but system to secure success.
COMMON SENSE.
PHILADELPHIA, Oct. 4, 1780.
P. S. While this paper was preparing for the press, the treachery of General
Arnold became known, and engrossed the attention and conversation of the public;
and that, not so much on account of the traitor as the magnitude of the treason,
and the providence evident in the discovery. The matter, as far as it is at
present known, is thus briefly related:
General Arnold about six weeks before had obtained the command of the important
post of West Point, situated on the North River, about sixty miles above New
York, and an hundred below Albany, there being no other defenceable pass between
it and the last mentioned place. At what time, or in what manner, he first
entered into a negotiation with the enemy for betraying the fort and garrison
into their hands, does not yet appear.
While Arnold commanded at West Point, General Washington and the Minister of
France went to Hartford in Connecticut, to consult on matters, in concert with
Admiral Terney, commander of the French fleet stationed at Rhode Island. In the
mean time Arnold held a conference with Major Andre, Adjutant-General to General
Clinton, whom he traitorously furnished with plans of the fort, state of the
garrison, minutes of the last council of war, and the manner in which he would
post the troops when the enemy should attempt a surprise; and then gave him a
pass, by the name of Mr. John Anderson, to go to the lines at the White Plains
or lower, if he Mr. Anderson thought proper, he being (the pass said) on public
business.
Thus furnished Andre parted from Arnold, set off for New York, and had nearly
arrived at the extent of our lines, when he was stopped by a party of militia,
to whom he produced his pass, but they, not being satisfied with his account,
insisted on taking him before the commanding officer, Lieut. Col. Jamieson.
Finding himself in this situation, and hoping to escape by a bribe, he offered
them his purse, watch and a promise of any quantity of goods they would accept,
which these honest men nobly and virtuously scorned, and confident with their
duty took him to the proper officer. On examination there was found on him the
above mentioned papers and several others, all in the handwriting of General
Arnold, and finding himself thus detected, he confessed his proper name and
character. He was accordingly made a close prisoner, and the papers sent off by
express to West Point, at which place General Washington had arrived soon after
the arrival of the packet. On this disclosure, he went in quest of Arnold, whom
he had not seen that day, but all that could be learned was that Arnold had
received a letter some short time before which had much confused him, since
which he had disappeared. Colonel Hamilton, one of General Washington's aids,
with some others were sent after him, but he, having the start, eluded the
pursuit, took boat under pretence of a flag, and got on board the Vulture sloop
of war lying in the North River; on which it may be truly said, that one vulture
was receiving another. From on board this vessel he addressed a letter to
General Washington, which, in whatever light it may be viewed, confirms him a
finished villain.
The true character of Arnold is that of a desperado. His whole life has been a
life of jobs; and where either plunder or profit was the object, no danger
deterred, no principle restrained him. In his person he was smart and active,
somewhat diminutive, weak in his capacities and trifling in his conversation;
and though gallant in the field, was defective in the talents necessary for
command. The early convulsion of the times afforded him an introduction into
life, to the elegance of which he was before a stranger, and the eagerness of
the public to reward and encourage enterprise, procured him at once both
applause and promotion. His march to Quebec gave him fame, and the plunder of
Montreal put the first stamp to his public character. His behavior, at Danbury
and Saratoga once more covered over his crimes, which again broke forth in the
plunder of Philadelphia, under pretence of supplying the army. From this time,
the true spring of his conduct being known, he became both disregarded and
disesteemed, and this last instance of his treachery has proved the public
judgment right.
When we take a review of the history of former times it will turn out to the
honor of America that, notwithstanding the trying variety of her situation, this
is the only instance of defection in a general officer; and even in this case,
the unshaken honesty of those who detected him heightens the national character,
to which his apostasy serves as a foil. From the nature of his crime, and his
disposition to monopolize, it is reasonable to conclude he had few or no direct
accomplices. His sole object was to make a monied bargain; and to be consistent
with himself, he would as readily betray the side he has deserted to, as that he
deserted from.
But there is one reflection results from this black business that deserves
notice, which is that it shows the declining power of the enemy. An attempt to
bribe is a sacrifice of military fame, and a confession of inability to conquer;
as a proud people they ought to be above it, and as soldiers to despise it; and
however they may feel on the occasion, the world at large will despise them for
it, and consider America superior to their arms.
C. S.
The Crisis Number X
by Thomas Paine
X.
ON THE KING OF ENGLAND'S SPEECH.
OF all the innocent passions which actuate the human mind there is none
more universally prevalent than curiosity. It reaches all mankind, and in
matters which concern us, or concern us not, it alike provokes in us a desire to
know them.
Although the situation of America, superior to every effort to enslave her, and
daily rising to importance and opulence, has placed her above the region of
anxiety, it has still left her within the circle of curiosity; and her fancy to
see the speech of a man who had proudly threatened to bring her to his feet, was
visibly marked with that tranquil confidence which cared nothing about its
contents. It was inquired after with a smile, read with a laugh, and dismissed
with disdain.
But, as justice is due, even to an enemy, it is right to say, that the speech is
as well managed as the embarrassed condition of their affairs could well admit
of; and though hardly a line of it is true, except the mournful story of
Cornwallis, it may serve to amuse the deluded commons and people of England, for
whom it was calculated.
"The war," says the speech, "is still unhappily prolonged by that restless
ambition which first excited our enemies to commence it, and which still
continues to disappoint my earnest wishes and diligent exertions to restore the
public tranquillity."
How easy it is to abuse truth and language, when men, by habitual wickedness,
have learned to set justice at defiance. That the very man who began the war,
who with the most sullen insolence refused to answer, and even to hear the
humblest of all petitions, who has encouraged his officers and his army in the
most savage cruelties, and the most scandalous plunderings, who has stirred up
the Indians on one side, and the negroes on the other, and invoked every aid of
hell in his behalf, should now, with an affected air of pity, turn the tables
from himself, and charge to another the wickedness that is his own, can only be
equalled by the baseness of the heart that spoke it.
To be nobly wrong is more manly than to be meanly right, is an expression I once
used on a former occasion, and it is equally applicable now. We feel something
like respect for consistency even in error. We lament the virtue that is
debauched into a vice, but the vice that affects a virtue becomes the more
detestable: and amongst the various assumptions of character, which hypocrisy
has taught, and men have practised, there is none that raises a higher relish of
disgust, than to see disappointed inveteracy twisting itself, by the most
visible falsehoods, into an appearance of piety which it has no pretensions to.
"But I should not," continues the speech, "answer the trust committed to the
sovereign of a free people, nor make a suitable return to my subjects for their
constant, zealous, and affectionate attachment to my person, family and
government, if I consented to sacrifice, either to my own desire of peace, or to
their temporary ease and relief, those essential rights and permanent interests,
upon the maintenance and preservation of which, the future strength and security
of this country must principally depend."
That the man whose ignorance and obstinacy first involved and still continues
the nation in the most hopeless and expensive of all wars, should now meanly
flatter them with the name of a free people, and make a merit of his crime,
under the disguise of their essential rights and permanent interests, is
something which disgraces even the character of perverseness. Is he afraid they
will send him to Hanover, or what does he fear? Why is the sycophant thus added
to the hypocrite, and the man who pretends to govern, sunk into the humble and
submissive memorialist?
What those essential rights and permanent interests are, on which the future
strength and security of England must principally depend, are not so much as
alluded to. They are words which impress nothing but the ear, and are calculated
only for the sound.
But if they have any reference to America, then do they amount to the
disgraceful confession, that England, who once assumed to be her protectress,
has now become her dependant. The British king and ministry are constantly
holding up the vast importance which America is of to England, in order to
allure the nation to carry on the war: now, whatever ground there is for this
idea, it ought to have operated as a reason for not beginning it; and,
therefore, they support their present measures to their own disgrace, because
the arguments which they now use, are a direct reflection on their former
policy.
"The favorable appearance of affairs," continues the speech, "in the East
Indies, and the safe arrival of the numerous commercial fleets of my kingdom,
must have given you satisfaction."
That things are not quite so bad every where as in America may be some cause of
consolation, but can be none for triumph. One broken leg is better than two, but
still it is not a source of joy: and let the appearance of affairs in the East
Indies be ever so favorable, they are nevertheless worse than at first, without
a prospect of their ever being better. But the mournful story of Cornwallis was
yet to be told, and it was necessary to give it the softest introduction
possible.
"But in the course of this year," continues the speech, "my assiduous endeavors
to guard the extensive dominions of my crown have not been attended with success
equal to the justice and uprightness of my views."- What justice and uprightness
there was in beginning a war with America, the world will judge of, and the
unequalled barbarity with which it has been conducted, is not to be worn from
the memory by the cant of snivelling hypocrisy.
"And it is with great concern that I inform you that the events of war have been
very unfortunate to my arms in Virginia, having ended in the loss of my forces
in that province."- And our great concern is that they are not all served in the
same manner.
"No endeavors have been wanted on my part," says the speech, "to extinguish that
spirit of rebellion which our enemies have found means to foment and maintain in
the colonies; and to restore to my deluded subjects in America that happy and
prosperous condition which they formerly derived from a due obedience to the
laws."
The expression of deluded subjects is become so hacknied and contemptible, and
the more so when we see them making prisoners of whole armies at a time, that
the pride of not being laughed at would induce a man of common sense to leave it
off. But the most offensive falsehood in the paragraph is the attributing the
prosperity of America to a wrong cause. It was the unremitted industry of the
settlers and their descendants, the hard labor and toil of persevering
fortitude, that were the true causes of the prosperity of America. The former
tyranny of England served to people it, and the virtue of the adventurers to
improve it. Ask the man, who, with his axe, has cleared a way in the wilderness,
and now possesses an estate, what made him rich, and he will tell you the labor
of his hands, the sweat of his brow, and the blessing of heaven. Let Britain but
leave America to herself and she asks no more. She has risen into greatness
without the knowledge and against the will of England, and has a right to the
unmolested enjoyment of her own created wealth.
"I will order," says the speech, "the estimates of the ensuing year to be laid
before you. I rely on your wisdom and public spirit for such supplies as the
circumstances of our affairs shall be found to require. Among the many ill
consequences which attend the continuation of the present war, I most sincerely
regret the additional burdens which it must unavoidably bring upon my faithful
subjects."
It is strange that a nation must run through such a labyrinth of trouble, and
expend such a mass of wealth to gain the wisdom which an hour's reflection might
have taught. The final superiority of America over every attempt that an island
might make to conquer her, was as naturally marked in the constitution of
things, as the future ability of a giant over a dwarf is delineated in his
features while an infant. How far providence, to accomplish purposes which no
human wisdom could foresee, permitted such extraordinary errors, is still a
secret in the womb of time, and must remain so till futurity shall give it
birth.
"In the prosecution of this great and important contest," says the speech, "in
which we are engaged, I retain a firm confidence in the protection of divine
providence, and a perfect conviction in the justice of my cause, and I have no
doubt, but, that by the concurrence and support of my Parliament, by the valour
of my fleets and armies, and by a vigorous, animated, and united exertion of the
faculties and resources of my people, I shall be enabled to restore the
blessings of a safe and honorable peace to all my dominions."
The King of England is one of the readiest believers in the world. In the
beginning of the contest he passed an act to put America out of the protection
of the crown of England, and though providence, for seven years together, has
put him out of her protection, still the man has no doubt. Like Pharaoh on the
edge of the Red Sea, he sees not the plunge he is making, and precipitately
drives across the flood that is closing over his head.
I think it is a reasonable supposition, that this part of the speech was
composed before the arrival of the news of the capture of Cornwallis: for it
certainly has no relation to their condition at the time it was spoken. But, be
this as it may, it is nothing to us. Our line is fixed. Our lot is cast; and
America, the child of fate, is arriving at maturity. We have nothing to do but
by a spirited and quick exertion, to stand prepared for war or peace. Too great
to yield, and too noble to insult; superior to misfortune, and generous in
success, let us untaintedly preserve the character which we have gained, and
show to future ages an example of unequalled magnanimity. There is something in
the cause and consequence of America that has drawn on her the attention of all
mankind. The world has seen her brave. Her love of liberty; her ardour in
supporting it; the justice of her claims, and the constancy of her fortitude
have won her the esteem of Europe, and attached to her interest the first power
in that country.
Her situation now is such, that to whatever point, past, present or to come, she
casts her eyes, new matter rises to convince her that she is right. In her
conduct towards her enemy, no reproachful sentiment lurks in secret. No sense of
injustice is left upon the mind. Untainted with ambition, and a stranger to
revenge, her progress has been marked by providence, and she, in every stage of
the conflict, has blest her with success.
But let not America wrap herself up in delusive hope and suppose the business
done. The least remissness in preparation, the least relaxation in execution,
will only serve to prolong the war, and increase expenses. If our enemies can
draw consolation from misfortune, and exert themselves upon despair, how much
more ought we, who are to win a continent by the conquest, and have already an
earnest of success?
Having, in the preceding part, made my remarks on the several matters which the
speech contains, I shall now make my remarks on what it does not contain.
There is not a syllable in its respecting alliances. Either the injustice of
Britain is too glaring, or her condition too desperate, or both, for any
neighboring power to come to her support. In the beginning of the contest, when
she had only America to contend with, she hired assistance from Hesse, and other
smaller states of Germany, and for nearly three years did America, young, raw,
undisciplined and unprovided, stand against the power of Britain, aided by
twenty thousand foreign troops, and made a complete conquest of one entire army.
The remembrance of those things ought to inspire us with confidence and
greatness of mind, and carry us through every remaining difficulty with content
and cheerfulness. What are the little sufferings of the present day, compared
with the hardships that are past? There was a time, when we had neither house
nor home in safety; when every hour was the hour of alarm and danger; when the
mind, tortured with anxiety, knew no repose, and every thing, but hope and
fortitude, was bidding us farewell.
It is of use to look back upon these things; to call to mind the times of
trouble and the scenes of complicated anguish that are past and gone. Then every
expense was cheap, compared with the dread of conquest and the misery of
submission. We did not stand debating upon trifles, or contending about the
necessary and unavoidable charges of defence. Every one bore his lot of
suffering, and looked forward to happier days, and scenes of rest.
Perhaps one of the greatest dangers which any country can be exposed to, arises
from a kind of trifling which sometimes steals upon the mind, when it supposes
the danger past; and this unsafe situation marks at this time the peculiar
crisis of America. What would she once have given to have known that her
condition at this day should be what it now is? And yet we do not seem to place
a proper value upon it, nor vigorously pursue the necessary measures to secure
it. We know that we cannot be defended, nor yet defend ourselves, without
trouble and expense. We have no right to expect it; neither ought we to look for
it. We are a people, who, in our situation, differ from all the world. We form
one common floor of public good, and, whatever is our charge, it is paid for our
own interest and upon our own account.
Misfortune and experience have now taught us system and method; and the
arrangements for carrying on the war are reduced to rule and order. The quotas
of the several states are ascertained, and I intend in a future publication to
show what they are, and the necessity as well as the advantages of vigorously
providing for them.
In the mean time, I shall conclude this paper with an instance of British
clemency, from Smollett's History of England, vol. xi., printed in London. It
will serve to show how dismal the situation of a conquered people is, and that
the only security is an effectual defence.
We all know that the Stuart family and the house of Hanover opposed each other
for the crown of England. The Stuart family stood first in the line of
succession, but the other was the most successful.
In July, 1745, Charles, the son of the exiled king, landed in Scotland,
collected a small force, at no time exceeding five or six thousand men, and made
some attempts to re-establish his claim. The late Duke of Cumberland, uncle to
the present King of England, was sent against him, and on the 16th of April
following, Charles was totally defeated at Culloden, in Scotland. Success and
power are the only situations in which clemency can be shown, and those who are
cruel, because they are victorious, can with the same facility act any other
degenerate character.
"Immediately after the decisive action at Culloden, the Duke of Cumberland took
possession of Inverness; where six and thirty deserters, convicted by a court
martial, were ordered to be executed: then he detached several parties to ravage
the country. One of these apprehended The Lady Mackintosh, who was sent prisoner
to Inverness, plundered her house, and drove away her cattle, though her husband
was actually in the service of the government. The castle of Lord Lovat was
destroyed. The French prisoners were sent to Carlisle and Penrith: Kilmarnock,
Balmerino, Cromartie, and his son, The Lord Macleod, were conveyed by sea to
London; and those of an inferior rank were confined in different prisons. The
Marquis of Tullibardine, together with a brother of the Earl of Dunmore, and
Murray, the pretender's secretary, were seized and transported to the Tower of
London, to which the Earl of Traquaire had been committed on suspicion; and the
eldest son of Lord Lovat was imprisoned in the castle of Edinburgh. In a word,
all the jails in Great Britain, from the capital, northwards, were filled with
those unfortunate captives; and great numbers of them were crowded together in
the holds of ships, where they perished in the most deplorable manner, for want
of air and exercise. Some rebel chiefs escaped in two French frigates that
arrived on the coast of Lochaber about the end of April, and engaged three
vessels belonging to his Britannic majesty, which they obliged to retire. Others
embarked on board a ship on the coast of Buchan, and were conveyed to Norway,
from whence they travelled to Sweden. In the month of May, the Duke of
Cumberland advanced with the army into the Highlands, as far as Fort Augustus,
where he encamped; and sent off detachments on all hands, to hunt down the
fugitives, and lay waste the country with fire and sword. The castles of
Glengary and Lochiel were plundered and burned; every house, hut, or habitation,
met with the same fate, without distinction; and all the cattle and provision
were carried off; the men were either shot upon the mountains, like wild beasts,
or put to death in cold blood, without form of trial; the women, after having
seen their husbands and fathers murdered, were subjected to brutal violation,
and then turned out naked, with their children, to starve on the barren heaths.
One whole family was enclosed in a barn, and consumed to ashes. Those ministers
of vengeance were so alert in the execution of their office, that in a few days
there was neither house, cottage, man, nor beast, to be seen within the compass
of fifty miles; all was ruin, silence, and desolation."
I have here presented the reader with one of the most shocking instances of
cruelty ever practised, and I leave it, to rest on his mind, that he may be
fully impressed with a sense of the destruction he has escaped, in case Britain
had conquered America; and likewise, that he may see and feel the necessity, as
well for his own personal safety, as for the honor, the interest, and happiness
of the whole community, to omit or delay no one preparation necessary to secure
the ground which we so happily stand upon.
To the People of America
by Thomas Paine
TO THE PEOPLE OF AMERICA
On the expenses, arrangements and disbursements for carrying
on the war,
and finishing it with honor and advantage
WHEN any necessity or occasion has pointed out the convenience of
addressing the public, I have never made it a consideration whether the subject
was popular or unpopular, but whether it was right or wrong; for that which is
right will become popular, and that which is wrong, though by mistake it may
obtain the cry or fashion of the day, will soon lose the power of delusion, and
sink into disesteem.
A remarkable instance of this happened in the case of Silas
Deane; and I mention this circumstance with the greater ease, because the poison
of his hypocrisy spread over the whole country, and every man, almost without
exception, thought me wrong in opposing him. The best friends I then had, except
Mr. [Henry] Laurens, stood at a distance, and this tribute, which is due to his
constancy, I pay to him with respect, and that the readier, because he is not
here to hear it. If it reaches him in his imprisonment, it will afford him an
agreeable reflection.
"As he rose like a rocket, he would fall like a stick," is a
metaphor which I applied to Mr. Deane, in the first piece which I published
respecting him, and he has exactly fulfilled the description. The credit he so
unjustly obtained from the public, he lost in almost as short a time. The
delusion perished as it fell, and he soon saw himself stripped of popular
support. His more intimate acquaintances began to doubt, and to desert him long
before he left America, and at his departure, he saw himself the object of
general suspicion. When he arrived in France, he endeavored to effect by treason
what he had failed to accomplish by fraud. His plans, schemes and projects,
together with his expectation of being sent to Holland to negotiate a loan of
money, had all miscarried. He then began traducing and accusing America of every
crime, which could injure her reputation. "That she was a ruined country; that
she only meant to make a tool of France, to get what money she could out of her,
and then to leave her and accommodate with Britain." Of all which and much more,
Colonel Laurens and myself, when in France, informed Dr. Franklin, who had not
before heard of it. And to complete the character of traitor, he has, by letters
to his country since, some of which, in his own handwriting, are now in the
possession of Congress, used every expression and argument in his power, to
injure the reputation of France, and to advise America to renounce her alliance,
and surrender up her independence.* Thus in France he abuses America, and in his
letters to America he abuses France; and is endeavoring to create disunion
between two countries, by the same arts of double-dealing by which he caused
dissensions among the commissioners in Paris, and distractions in America. But
his life has been fraud, and his character has been that of a plodding,
plotting, cringing mercenary, capable of any disguise that suited his purpose.
His final detection has very happily cleared up those mistakes, and removed that
uneasiness, which his unprincipled conduct occasioned. Every one now sees him in
the same light; for towards friends or enemies he acted with the same deception
and injustice, and his name, like that of Arnold, ought now to be forgotten
among us. As this is the first time that I have mentioned him since my return
from France, it is my intention that it shall be the last. From this digression,
which for several reasons I thought necessary to give, I now proceed to the
purport of my address.
* Mr. William Marshall, of this city [Philadelphia],
formerly a pilot, who had been taken at sea and carried to England, and got
from thence to France, brought over letters from Mr. Deane to America, one of
wh |